Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: The master criminal
Author: Paternoster, G. Sidney
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.
Copyright Status: Not copyrighted in the United States. If you live elsewhere check the laws of your country before downloading this ebook. See comments about copyright issues at end of book.

*** Start of this Doctrine Publishing Corporation Digital Book "The master criminal" ***


THE MASTER CRIMINAL



BY THE SAME AUTHOR


  GUTTER TRAGEDIES
  CHILDREN OF EARTH
  THE FOLLY OF THE WISE
  THE MOTOR PIRATE
  THE CRUISE OF THE CONQUISTADOR
  THE LADY OF THE BLUE MOTOR


[Illustration: "Five or seven? It won't
matter much, will it?"]



THE
MASTER CRIMINAL

BY
G. SIDNEY PATERNOSTER

_Author of "The Cruise of the Conquistador,"
"The Lady of the Blue Motor,"
"The Motor Pirate," etc._

ILLUSTRATED BY CHARLES JOHNSON POST

NEW YORK
THE CUPPLES & LEON CO.
PUBLISHERS



COPYRIGHT, 1907, BY
G. SIDNEY PATERNOSTER

_All Rights Reserved_



CONTENTS


  CHAPTER                                             PAGE

  I.      "LET THEM GET WHO HAVE THE
          POWER, AND LET THEM KEEP WHO
          CAN"                                           7

  II.     CONCERNING THE GREUZE, SOME GENTILES
          AND A JEW                                     22

  III.    THE MAKING OF A CRIMINAL                      33

  IV.     THE REFLECTIONS OF LYNTON HORA                42

  V.      THE COMMANDATORE MAKES A DEDUCTION            52

  VI.     WHEREIN A KING'S MESSENGER IS DESPOILED
          OF HIS DESPATCHES                             62

  VII.    MERIEL MAKES AN IMPRESSION                    76

  VIII.   A SUCCESSFUL SPECULATION AND ITS
          RESULTS                                       87

  IX.     CONCERNING A GREAT MAN'S VEXATION             97

  X.      A NEW VIEW OF THE FLURSCHEIM ROBBERY         105

  XI.     GUY FINDS A NEW HOME                         116

  XII.    INSPECTOR KENLY'S LODGER                     128

  XIII.   POISONED WORDS                               137

  XIV.    THE SHADOW-MAN                               146

  XV.     INSPECTOR KENLY FINDS A CLUE                 157

  XVI.    GUY MAKES A RESOLUTION                       168

  XVII.   STAR-DUST                                    177

  XVIII.  CORNELIUS JESSEL DREAMS OF A FORTUNE         190

  XIX.    INSPECTOR KENLY REPORTS                      201

  XX.     GUY'S LAST THEFT                             213

  XXI.    EXPECTATION                                  224

  XXII.   TEMPTATION                                   235

  XXIII.  A FRIEND IN ADVERSITY                        248

  XXIV.   INSPECTOR KENLY CONTEMPLATES ACTION          258

  XXV.    THE PARTING OF THE WAYS                      269

  XXVI.   CAPTAIN MARVEN'S SURPRISE PACKET             280

  XXVII.  DUTY CALLS                                   289

  XXVIII. THE FRUITS OF A CRIMINAL PHILOSOPHY          300

  L'ENVOI                                              312



THE MASTER CRIMINAL



CHAPTER I

"LET THEM GET WHO HAVE THE POWER, AND LET THEM KEEP WHO CAN"


The night was of velvety blackness--one of those soft, warm, dark
nights of June when the southwest wind rolls a cloud-curtain over the
stars, when the air is heavy with unshed rain, when lamps burn dully,
and when a nameless oppression broods over the face of the land.

Seated at an open casement looking out into the London night was a
woman. Her hands grasped each other over her knee with a tense grip
which gave the lie to the calm of her face. Hers was a face to which in
repose Rossetti would have woven an adoring sonnet, though not as to
another "lazy, laughing, languid Jenny, fond of a kiss, and fond of a
guinea," but a sonnet of purity and peace. Yet if the sonnet had been
written, and the woman had read, the full scarlet lips which seemed to
have gathered into them all the colour from her face, would have parted
in scornful laughter.

Her eyes, a part of the night into which they gazed, had dull shadows
beneath them, painted there by weariness, yet she still sat motionless
in a strained attitude of expectation.

Her sole companion, seated a few yards away in an
easy chair, looked up at her occasionally from a book
which he held in his hand and smiled.

Lynton Hora, the Commandatore, as he chose to be called by the members
of his household, was in quite another way an equally interesting type
of humanity. He was a man of seventy inches, broad shouldered and
lean flanked, with well-poised head. His hair was grey at the sides,
his face was clean-shaven. Seen lounging in the easy chair, with his
face in the shadow, he appeared to be a man of not more than forty--an
old-young student, perhaps, for there were thought lines on his brow
and his cheeks were almost as pallid as those of the woman at the
window. Such an impression would, however, have been speedily put to
flight, immediately he looked up. Then there could be no mistaking the
man of action. The keen, hard, grey eyes, the domineering nose, the
firmly cut lips, labelled him definitely--conclusively.

Presently the woman altered her position. The in-drawing of her breath,
as she turned from the window, might have been a sigh. She looked
around at her companion.

He seemed conscious of the movement, as, without lifting his eyes, he
asked lazily: "Tired, Myra?"

She strove to reproduce the quietude of his tone as she replied: "A
little. What's the time now, Commandatore?" but there was a tremor in
her voice, which showed clearly that she was not so indifferent as she
wished to appear.

The man tossed down his book.

"Listen," he said.

Almost as if in answer to his summons the voice of Big Ben
floated softly in through the window--one--two.

"He ought to be back by now," she said, and rising, she began to
rearrange the roses in a bowl on a table near.

"I don't expect Guy for another hour at least," said the man
carelessly, though he watched the woman keenly as he spoke. "After
that--well, if we don't see him in an hour, we shall probably not see
him for five years, at least."

The woman winced as from a blow.

"Five, or seven? It won't matter much, will it?" she replied quietly.
Then in a moment her self-control dropped from her. Her lethargy
vanished. A light came into her eyes, her nostrils became vibrant.
Without alteration of pitch her voice became passionate. "It is
horrible--brutal of you--to send him on such a business. What can
possess you to do such a thing--can you not spare even----"

"Hush!" The man's voice interrupted her. He spoke with silken suavity.
"How often have I told you that the reiteration of facts known to both
parties to a conversation is the hall-mark of the unintelligent!" "By
Jove, Myra," he continued, changing the subject, "how really beautiful
you are! What a lucky dog Guy is to rouse such an interest!"

The woman dropped her eyes and the man continued meditatively, "What
a vast alteration has taken place in the ideal of feminine beauty
since the fifteenth century! Do you know, Myra, while you have been
sitting so patiently at the window I have been measuring you by the
canons of beauty laid down by that sleek old churchman, Master Agnolo
Firenzuola"--he tapped the black letter volume which lay beside
him--"and though he, I'm afraid, would have many faults to find with
your features----"

The levity of his tone roused her again to passionate utterance.

"No more," she cried. "Have you no heart left in you, Commandatore,
that you can send your own son to such danger and sit there calmly
reading while----" She broke off abruptly, her voice choked with a sob.

Lynton Hora rose from his seat and viewed the woman, who shrank from
his steady gaze.

"Have matters gone so far as that?" he asked, and his lips smiled
cynically.

She made no reply.

"You never asked my permission," he continued dispassionately. "Guy
has said nothing. I am afraid, Myra, I shall have to see that he is
protected from your influence."

She looked at him appealingly, and her eyes were as the night, heavy
with unshed rain.

"He--is--your--son," she said slowly. "I--I cannot do him the harm that
you can do him, and yet--I am afraid for him. Perhaps you had better
send me away, Commandatore. My fears may make a coward of him."

The man spoke as if musing aloud. "Where shall I send you? Back to the
gutter from whence I picked you? Do you remember anything of your home,
Myra?"

"I know. I know," she protested. "You have reminded me often enough."

He paid no heed to her appeal.

"Yesterday," he said, "I visited the place. No, it has not tumbled
down yet, my dear--the very house where your mother sold you to me for
half-a-crown and a bottle of gin, a dirty child of five. That was
fifteen years ago--fifteen years ago to-day. You were unwanted, uncared
for--I wanted you, I cared for you. Let me tell you how I found your
mother, Myra?"

She lifted her hands with a gesture of appeal, but he disregarded the
action.

"She occupies the same old room. There's but little light finds its
way through the dirty window, though enough to show that your mother
has not changed her habits--nor her rags. She sat there alone, like
a dropsical spider and cried aloud for gin. Would you like to change
this"--his hand directed attention to the apartment--"for a share of
your mother's abode, Myra Norton?"

Myra had seated herself. She made no answer for a while. Her eyes
wandered about the long apartment, with its shaded lights and its
flowers and its luxurious furniture. Her hand dropped on the silken
gauze of her dress. The man watching smiled as he saw the flash of
the diamonds on her fingers and noted the caressing motion of her
fingers upon the shimmering fabric. At last she raised her eyes to her
questioner.

"You could not send me back," she said.

"I could send you to a worse place," he replied coldly. "You know my
power."

She shuddered.

His tone changed completely.

"You little fool," he said roughly, but with a kindliness his speech
had lacked hitherto. "You know very well that I could never let you go
back to the stews from which I rescued you. But I wanted to remind you,
Myra, that you belong to me--that, like myself, you are
pledged to war--a merciless, devouring, devastating war with Society;
that you, even as I myself, are outcast--one from whom the world would
shrink--you have been in danger of forgetting lately, Myra."

"I have not forgotten," she answered with comparative quietness, "but I
have been thinking of what is the use of it all, this eternal warfare
against the world. You have won again and again. You have told me that
you are the richer by what the world has lost. You lack nothing that
money may buy. There must come a time when the warrior must rest."

"Not while his arm retains its strength to lift his sword," replied
Hora, "and by that time he should have provided someone to take his
place."

"But if that person is unequal to the task?" Myra queried timidly.

"He pays the penalty," answered Hora.

"Even if it is your own son?" she persisted.

"Or your lover," he added coldly.

"Your heart is iron," she murmured despairingly.

He laughed aloud. "Or non-existent," he said. "It was stolen from me
years ago, and I have forgotten what it was like to be possessed of
one. Now I have only my profession--and in that I am first. You admit
that, Myra?"

"I admit that," she replied sullenly.

"Why should I not train my successor to take my place when my day
comes?"

The woman in the listener cried out instinctively "Because he has what
you lack--a heart."

He smiled grimly. "It is easily lost, Myra. What if I
should say to you some day: Take it from him, toss
it away, trample on it, break it, or store it away and treasure it with
your trinkets--do as you like with it?"

"You would----" She rose from her seat and faced him with extended
arms. Her lips were slightly parted. The shadows had flitted away from
her eyes. Her bosom rose stormily from its gauze veilings. Her lithe
form was poised expectantly.

"By Jove, you are beautiful, Myra," he answered.

"I am glad of it--glad," she cried exultantly.

Hora stood in a thoughtful attitude.

"Myra--Myrrha," he half-mused, turning the name about, "a good name for
a love-potion, there's a foreshadowing of the bitterness of love in it."

Her brow clouded and she turned away. "You are always mocking me," she
muttered.

"No," he said, and he stepped across the room to her side. There was
something strange about his walk. He passed across the room with the
swift, stealthy swing of a panther--a wounded panther, for one foot
dragged after the other and robbed his progress of complete grace. He
came to her side and laid his hand on her arm.

"I am not mocking, Myra," he said seriously. "I have long wanted to
know exactly where Guy was placed in your thoughts. You have never
revealed yourself until to-night. Even now I am not quite sure----"

Myra's countenance cleared and a happy smile shone on her face. She
looked up at him expectantly.

"You can tell me how much you care for him," he continued. "I shall not
reveal your confidence to Guy."

She dropped her eyes.

"I cannot tell anyone," she whispered
with a strange shyness.

Hora smiled whimsically. "What liars love makes of us all," he said.
"Yet perhaps you are speaking truthfully. You cannot tell me what you
do not know."

"I could die--die happily--for him," she murmured softly.

"Fools sometimes die for utter strangers," remarked Hora sardonically.
"That's not love. Could you live for him, could you give yourself to
another for his welfare, could you----"

"Not that, no, not that!" The cry was wrung from her lips. "You would
not condemn me to that, Commandatore?"

"Hush, Myra," he said. "I was merely speaking of possibilities which
might arise in the future."

"I thought," she faltered, "that some scheme had crossed your brain,
which would necessitate--I could not do it now."

"I have thought of no scheme," he replied reassuringly, "which would
wither this new flower which has blossomed in your heart."

"You are mocking again," she remarked.

"I am speaking seriously," he retorted, "of possibilities which might
occur. Guy's mate must be prepared for anything--for everything.
You must remember that I am not to be turned aside from the object
I have in view. Nor is Guy to be turned aside either. His will is
as inflexible as mine. The woman who mates with him must be at one
with him in his purpose, and, if need be, must be ready to sacrifice
herself. Tell me now, Myra, if you can do that, or must I find a mate
for him who will?"

She did not hesitate a moment. The blood rushed to her
face. "For Guy I would do anything," she cried. "All that I ask is to
be near him to help him to----"

"To weaken him with your woman fears," Hora interpolated.

"No," she cried. "He would never know that I feared for his safety. Let
me try, Commandatore. Give a fair chance--only that!"

He meditated a while, then he tapped Myra's arm with his finger.

"You shall have your chance," he said. "But remember it is your
business to keep him to his profession. He has no time for lovemaking.
You shall have your chance, but be sure you use it wisely. If you do,
the day may come when I shall say to Guy, there is your wife--and the
wife will be the child I have picked from the gutter and educated and
treated as my own."

There was a brooding menace in the tone in which he finished, and the
woman feared to waken him to speech again. At last, he said harshly:

"Have you no thanks, Myra?"

"You frighten me sometimes, Commandatore," she answered timidly. "I
cannot understand you."

"You will do so some day," he replied. He seemed amused at the idea,
for he laughed and spoke good-humouredly. "If you make good use of your
chances, my girl, everything will become clear to you. You have wit
as well as beauty, Myra. Make use of them both. He is of an age to be
caught."

Through the open window the voice of Big Ben solemnly tolled three.

The light died out of the woman's face. "Cruel," she murmured in a
tense, hoarse whisper. "It was cruel to mock me so. Something has
happened to him. The hour has passed. Oh! Guy, Guy!"

Lynton Hora turned upon her fiercely. "Is this a specimen of your
self-control?" he said. "Haven't you learned that in the profession
Guy has adopted a thousand trivial events may supply reason for delay?
Mind, if I have any snivelling I withdraw my promise."

Myra was constrained into silence. She went to the window. Already
the black night had given place to the grey mists of coming dawn. She
looked out over the park. Uprising from the sea of shadows objects
began to emerge. From the near distance the music of violins and harps
throbbed to a waltz measure. She stood there unheeding while the light
strengthened, and the dawn came up from the east in a glory of crimson
and gold. She stood there unseeing, her heart throbbing with agony, yet
with face schooled to complete apathy.

The rose and the gold faded from the sky. Another day had begun. She
had forgotten Hora's presence, forgotten everything. She closed the
window and lifted her hand to pull down the blinds and shut out the
day. Hora's voice awakened her.

"Listen," he said, and, rising swiftly from his chair, he pushed Myra
aside and threw open the casement again. The sharp sound of the bell of
an electric brougham entered that window on the eighth storey just as
the voice of Big Ben proclaimed four.

"Only somebody's brougham," said Myra listlessly.

"My brougham," replied Hora curtly. "Bringing Guy home."

She shrugged her shoulders. "Coming back without him, most likely,"
she said. Still, in spite of the remark, hope showed itself in her
expression. The carriage stopped. For five minutes a strained silence
endured. It was broken by the sound of an outside door opening and
shutting. Another pause! Both were looking towards the door of the
apartment in which Myra and Hora stood expectantly. Hora held up his
finger warningly to his companion.

The door opened and there entered a young man in evening clothes, his
coat was over his arm, upon which an umbrella was hooked, and his hat
was in his hand.

"Hullo! I didn't expect anyone to be waiting up for me," he remarked
cheerfully. "I thought that was a privilege reserved for the reprobate
sons of evangelical households. I suppose you haven't been praying for
the success of my undertaking."

He laughed joyously. His high spirits seemed infectious. Hora smiled
responsively. Joy illuminated Myra's expressive features like sunlight
on the woodlands after an April shower.

"You surely did not think that I should fail?" he asked, looking from
one to another.

"I did not," replied Hora drily. "Myra scarcely shared my confidence
though. She seemed to think that it was brutal of me to give you a
chance of showing what you could do, when working on your own account."

The young man laughed again.

"These women--these women," he said. Then he turned to Myra.
"I thought that you, at least, would have had confidence in
me." He tossed his coat on to a chair, and going to her,
encircled her waist with his arm. "Did you really think
I should fail in my first coup?" he asked.

"No--no--no," she cried vehemently. "But, oh, Guy! I was afraid. If I
could only have come with you--to have shared in the danger."

"Then I probably should have failed," he added. "As it is----"

He turned to Hora and there was a proud gleam in his eyes. "You must
set me a more difficult task next time, Commandatore," he said.

"Then you have secured the picture?" asked the elder man eagerly.

For reply, Guy lifted the umbrella from the table where he had laid
it down. To all appearance it was merely a specimen of the article it
pretended to be, but in the young man's hands the handle unscrewed,
revealing the fact that it was a sham. Instead of an umbrella, a long
narrow case was revealed, and from within it Guy coaxed with infinite
care a roll of canvas.

"It was rather a tight fit," he remarked, "but I don't think I have
damaged the picture." He unrolled the canvas carefully on the table.

Hora's eyes sparkled as he looked down upon the painting.

"How I have longed for a genuine Greuze to add to my collection," he
remarked, "and this--this is the most perfect specimen in the world. My
dear Guy, how can I ever be grateful enough to you?"

Was there a dash of sarcasm in his voice? If so, the young man did not
notice it. He was moved to genuine emotion.

"It is a little thing in return for all you have done for me," he
replied earnestly. He laid his hand on the elder man's arm as he
continued, "There's nothing I would not do which would add to your
happiness--you have given me so much."

Hora shook off the grasp.

"The air is overcharged with sentiment," he said lightly. "Myra here
might have been trained in an English boarding school for young ladies,
she is so full of it. And now you." He held up his hands in derision.

Guy laughed gaily. He was used to Hora's moods.

"Sentiment does sound a little incongruous from the lips of a
successful burglar, doesn't it?" he said, and he laughed again at the
whimsicality of the idea. "Yet you know that at heart, Commandatore,
you are just as much of a sentimentalist as either Myra or myself. What
else can be the motive of your perpetual enmity with the world?"

"What else; ay, what else," murmured Hora musingly, a bitter smile
about his lips. "But, all the same, there's no need to debauch our
minds with contemplation of sentiment. It's dangerous."

He returned to an examination of the picture.

"The fool who owned this," he said, "would have sold it. He's no poorer
for the loss. It is not the loss of the work of art that he will
regret, but the loss of the ten thousand guineas he gave for it."

"It is in really appreciative hands now," remarked Guy after a
pause. "By the way," he added, picking up his overcoat from the
chair, "I could not resist the temptation of bringing away a few
of the best examples of Flurscheim's snuff-boxes. I know you have
a vacant corner or two in the cabinets upstairs, and if you think
they are not worthy of being placed in them, well the brilliants
in the settings will make a necklace for Myra."

He thrust his hand into the pockets and took out a number of superb
specimens of the art of a bygone age.

"It was very thoughtful of you," said Hora, as he lifted each box
lovingly as Guy laid it on the table. There were twelve in all, and
eight he placed on one side. "These are really artistic productions,"
he said, "and I shall keep them. The others are worth no more than the
intrinsic value of the stones and of the gold of which they are made."

Guy turned to Myra. "What will you have them made into, Myra, a necklet
or a bracelet?--I must give you a keepsake to wear in memory of my
first big exploit."

"Anything you like, Guy," she answered softly, while her face flushed
with delight.

"Then we will think of something," he observed carelessly. He picked up
one of the boxes which Hora had placed aside. "I think I should like to
keep this one myself, Commandatore," he remarked, "as a souvenir of the
occasion."

Hora took it from his hand and looked at the box curiously. In the lid
was set an exquisite miniature on ivory of a young girl, with regular,
delicate features and a cloud of golden hair.

"You have good taste, keep it, by all means," urged Hora carelessly.
A slight hesitation in Guy's tone as he proffered the request was
evidence to his swift brain that the young man had not revealed
the whole of his reason for the desire to retain that particular
box. He knew that he could when he liked elicit that reason. But
the morning was advancing. He began to feel wearied. He would
have plenty of time on the morrow to learn all that he desired to know.

"Come, my children," he said, "it is time we went to bed. Guy, you will
help me put these new possessions of ours into a place of security.
Sleep well, Myra."

The woman accepted the dismissal submissively. She re-echoed the wish,
and, with a last glance over her shoulder at Guy as she swept out of
the room, she left them.

"Myra's getting very fond of you, Guy," remarked Hora when the door had
closed behind her.

"Indeed," he answered carelessly, for his mind was running on other
matters.

Hora laughed at the tone, but he did not renew the subject.

"What made you so late?" he asked.

"Some jolly people I met at the ball," he answered absently. "I stopped
an hour longer than I intended."

"H--m, business before pleasure is as good a motto for your profession
as for any other," said Hora.

"I know," answered Guy, "but still----"

"You are young," commented Hora, "I hope that in your haste you left no
clue."

The young man laughed. "Plenty," he said, "but all false ones."

"Well, you shall tell me all about it in the morning," said Hora.
"Bring the stuff along."

Guy gathered up the sham umbrella and the jewelled snuff-boxes,
slipping the one he had decided to retain for himself into his pocket.

Hora raised the picture reverently and led the way
out of the room, Guy following him.



CHAPTER II

CONCERNING THE GREUZE, SOME GENTILES, AND A JEW


Later on that same morning all London was thrilled by the story of a
sensational burglary at the house of Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim, the
noted connoisseur and dealer in objects of art.

Just at daybreak Mr. Flurscheim had been aroused by the ringing of
the burglar alarm, and, throwing on his dressing-gown, he had rushed
downstairs. There he had found the front door open, and, running into
the street, he commenced to blow frantically the police whistle which
he had in his hand--he always slept with a police whistle attached to a
ribbon round his neck and with a revolver under his pillow.

He had not been compelled to waste much breath before the summons was
responded to, for a constable was almost instantly on the spot.

Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim dwelt in a quarter of London greatly favoured
by rank, fashion, and the children of Abraham. His house was at the
corner of a street turning into Park Lane, and at the shrill sound of
the whistle there emerged from turning after turning helmeted men in
blue who with one accord made their way at paces varying with each
man's temperament to the place where the excited art dealer stood
beckoning vigorously.

Mr. Flurscheim had speedily revealed his reason for
giving the alarm. The house was surrounded by constables, and two
of the force accompanied the owner back into his house, which they
proceeded to search systematically. At this time, Mr. Flurscheim had
not discovered his loss and was disposed to think that the electric
alarm had frustrated an attempt of someone to enter his abode. But when
he arrived, in the course of the search, at his drawing-room on the
first floor, he learned that the thief had been only too successful in
the object which had brought him thither. From the place on the wall
where the gem of his collection, the Greuze, which he had sworn should
never leave his possession until £20,000 should have been paid into his
banking account, had hung, only an empty frame confronted him, while
tossed carelessly aside on the table was an ordinary table knife which
had been used for the purpose of cutting the canvas from the frame.

Upon the discovery of his loss, Mr. Flurscheim had for a while been
bereft of speech and movement. When volition returned to him, he
behaved as one demented. He wrung his hands, he tore his hair and his
clothes, and he called upon the God of Abraham and Isaac and Jacob to
visit his despoiler with condign punishment.

When a little later he discovered that some more of his choicest
treasures, the jewelled snuff-boxes of which he had the finest
collection in the world, had been carried away, he became absolutely
frantic with grief, so that even the policemen felt moved in their
hearts to pity him.

The frenzy did not endure long. A thing trifling in itself was
sufficient to restore the dealer to full possession of his senses. The
sergeant of police who had accompanied him into the room had pulled
out his note book in readiness to make notes of the occurrence, when a
clock on the mantel-shelf struck four. At the sound, Flurscheim became
still.

"Four o'clock," he murmured. "Four o'clock. There's no time to lose.
We must be doing." He turned to the policeman. "Sergeant," he said
dejectedly, "I shall trust you to forget the exhibition I have made of
myself--I----"

The sergeant answered briskly. "Very natural, I'm sure, sir. Should
have felt just like it myself, though I must admit I've put the
bracelets on many a man who hasn't said half as much as you have
done--of course, in the public streets, sir."

There was a sickly smile on Flurscheim's face as he answered: "I hope
none of them had such good reason for cursing as I have."

He did not pursue the topic. With an effort he forced his mind from
contemplation of the loss. "Hadn't we better leave things in this room
untouched, while we search the rest of the house? There may be some one
of the burglars, if there was more than one, still on the premises."

The sergeant agreed. But the search was a fruitless one. Mr.
Flurscheim's butler and his four women servants were the only other
persons found on the premises, and after their unsuccessful search the
uniformed members of the force withdrew and the dealer sat down to
await the arrival of the detective with what patience he could summon
to his aid.

It was the bitterest moment in Flurscheim's career. Despite Lynton
Hora's sneer, it was not the monetary value of his loss which troubled
him, for though he dealt in pictures and other art objects, yet he
never parted with any of his treasures without a poignant feeling of
regret. When he sold them, however, he knew that they would pass into
appreciative hands, that they would be guarded carefully and preserved
jealously. To him they were what horses are to one man or dogs to
another. They were his companions, his friends, his children--and to
have the chief of them ruthlessly cut from its frame and carried away,
he knew not where, was as if his household had been robbed of an only
child.

He gazed forlornly at the empty frame. Since the Greuze had come into
his possession, never a night had passed without his taking a last
glance at it before going upstairs to bed, never a morning dawned but
he had feasted his eyes upon it before sitting down to his breakfast.
To live alone without the Greuze seemed to him an unthinkable existence.

Yet the frame was empty. There took root in his heart a desire for
revenge upon the man who had robbed him.

That thought matured in the days which followed--the days which came
swiftly and passed swiftly, but without bringing him any trace of his
treasure, days in which the detectives continually buoyed him up with
hopes that his picture was on the ace of being restored to him.

They had indeed thought that the task would not have proved a
difficult one. Their inspection of the room from which the picture
had been stolen had led to the discovery of a number of clues to work
upon. They decided that an entry must have been effected through
a window which opened upon the portico over the front door.
At that window were a number of scarlet berried shrubs, and some of the
berries were found crushed on the carpet inside. On the balcony they
discovered a palette knife, with smears of cobalt and chrome upon it,
which obviously had been used to force back the catch of the window.
For days afterwards, detectives might have been observed knocking
at the doors of London studios and offering themselves as models to
aspiring Academicians, in the hope of ascertaining the whereabouts of
the missing picture. But they found no trace of the Greuze.

On the knife-handle too, were unmistakable finger-prints, and on the
empty frame were others. All were photographed, and hope was strong
that the identity of the thief would be disclosed thereby, through
comparison with the records of convicts at Scotland Yard. But when the
first comparison seemed to point to the fact that every print was that
of a different person, and closer investigation proved that the dirty
smudges were not finger-prints at all, the problem became indubitably
more complex. As for the knife which had been used to cut the canvas
from the frame, that was an ordinary table-knife, of which counterparts
might have been discovered in every mean house in the metropolis, and
it supplied no basis for any theory as to the owner. The one fact which
chiefly puzzled Scotland Yard, however, was the fact that no suspicious
characters had been observed anywhere in the neighbourhood, while
the position of the house was such that it was particularly open to
observation.

Standing at the corner of two streets, in a neighbourhood where all
the houses would be described in a house agent's catalogue as "highly
desirable family town residences," it was under observation from at
least three quarters. The streets at three or four o'clock were at that
time practically empty of all pedestrians save the police. Yet not a
member of the police on duty in the vicinity had seen a suspicious
looking character.

This was the more astonishing, because two extra constables were on
duty that night in the near neighbourhood. They had been detailed
for duty at the town mansion of one of the most popular of society
hostesses, Lady Greyston, who was giving the first of her dances
for the season. Lady Greyston's house was only six removed from Mr.
Flurscheim's, and until three o'clock one of the constables had been
stationed at the corner of the street, practically at Mr. Flurscheim's
front door, in order to direct the carriages arriving to pick up
departing guests. The stream of carriages had thinned shortly after
three, and then the constable had joined a colleague at the door, but
at no time during the night had anything out of the way attracted his
attention. The police were quite at a loss for an object of suspicion.

But while Scotland Yard was hopelessly at a loss for a clue, the
newspapers had been busy printing stories of the crime, which did great
credit to the fertility of the imagination of the reporters who were
detailed to work up the case. Those who read these stories might have
had warrant almost for believing that each writer must have been the
principal, so intimately and minutely was the crime reconstructed.

But throughout the public excitement and conjecture which the burglary
created, Lynton Hora and Guy remained entirely undisturbed, or, at
the most, merely stirred to mild amusement as each new theory was
evolved--each was so very wide of the mark. Yet audacious as many of
these theories were, none of them paralleled the audacity of the real
attempt.

How the burglary had been carried out was explained by Guy when,
refreshed by six hours' sleep and a cold bath, he joined Myra and Hora
at the breakfast table.

"I followed your plans almost exactly," he said to the elder man, "and
I found the interior of the house precisely as you described it."

"H--m," chuckled Hora, glancing at a print hung upon the wall opposite
him, "that Morland would have been a cheap investment, even if it had
been a fake. As it is----"

"As it is," laughed Guy, "your capital has returned to you more than
a thousandfold. Still I can't help marvelling at your wonderful eye
for detail. You could not have been in Flurscheim's house more than
an hour, and yet I found every wire, every lock, every catch, exactly
where you told me I should find them. Some of the doors and windows you
could never have seen? How could you know?"

"It was not through any capacity for seeing through brick walls," said
Hora drily. "But merely a deduction from what Flurscheim himself did
not tell me. He was very proud of a system of alarm designed by himself
for the protection of his treasures. He told me that it was impossible
for a window sash to be lifted or an outer door to be unlatched without
setting off the alarm--I observed from outside that the attics were
fitted with swing casements and I drew my own conclusions."

"You omitted to inform me that the servants slept in those
attics," remarked Guy. "I nearly stepped on the bed of one of them when
I entered the window."

"So that is why you left by the front door, was it?" enquired Hora. "It
was a little bit risky, wasn't it?"

"No," said the young man. "I calculated that I should get a minute's
start, and thirty seconds was quite enough. As a matter of fact, I had
a clear minute. I looked out into the street from a window and saw that
the coast was clear and the brougham was waiting. There were two or
three parties just leaving Lady Greyston's and I calculated upon being
able to join them without exciting observation. The street was very
much in shadow, and just between lights, after a dance, you know, no
one observes very clearly."

"Still it was a risk," observed Hora. "I should have returned by the
way I had gone."

"I still think I took the lesser evil," replied Guy. "Besides
the chance of finding Flurscheim's servants awake, there was the
possibility of being seen from the street as I passed along the parapet
back to the window of the Greyston's house. Then suppose I had met
someone on the stairs at the Greyston's. The function was practically
over. There was every likelihood that some of the servants would be
going to their quarters--it would have been deuced unpleasant to have
had to explain what I was doing there."

"At all events," remarked Hora, "you ought to have cut off the alarm.
Did you forget how to do it?"

A smile flickered across the young man's face.

"No," he said, "I left it in position on purpose. I thought I should
like to give Flurscheim a sporting chance of getting his own back.
There were just two flights of stairs and a bedroom door between us.
I thought that if that were not sufficient to enable me to get away I
should deserve to be captured."

Myra, who had been listening to the conversation in silence, half
uttered an exclamation. But she checked it so that only Hora's keen
ears heard. He smiled, but said nothing. Guy continued lazily: "You see
that I did not misjudge the conditions. I am here." Then he repeated
the words he had used a few hours previously. "You must set me a more
difficult task next time, Commandatore."

"What an enthusiast you are," remarked Hora. "If you go on at this
rate, there will be nothing left for you to do."

"I hate being idle," remarked the young man.

"Never fear, never fear," said Hora, "I have no doubt you will manage
to amuse yourself. You did so last night, did you not?"

Although the question was asked carelessly, the young man flushed
slightly as he answered: "Tolerably well."

"Only tolerably well?" asked Hora, "and yet you postponed your
enterprise until almost too late, for only 'tolerable' amusement."

"Admitted, Commandatore," answered Guy gaily, "the adverb is not
sufficient. To tell the truth, I met some very pleasant people, and the
time passed swiftly."

Myra sprung the next question.

"Who were they, Guy? Anyone I have met?"

"No," he answered. "A Captain and Mrs. Marven and----"

He did not get to the end of his sentence. Lynton Hora
had risen from his chair and interrupted him: "Who
did you say? Say the name again," he cried hoarsely.

Both Myra and Guy looked at him in amazement. Hora was not given to
showing emotion, and there could be no doubt but that he was deeply
moved. His lips were drawn closely together, beads of perspiration
broke out on his forehead, every line in his face deepened.

"What's the matter, Commandatore--father?" cried Guy in alarm, as he
sprung to Hora's side and laid his hand on the elder man's arm.

Hora shook off the touch roughly.

"Say the name again," he repeated.

"Marven," repeated Guy, "Captain Marven."

Gradually Hora regained control of himself. His features resumed their
normal air of petulant acquiescence with the world, but there was a
gleam in his eyes which revealed a very different spirit within him.
Presently he spoke.

"You are surprised to see me so much moved by the mention of a name.
You would not be if you knew what reason I have to hate the possessor
of it. So you found Captain Marven very good company, eh, Guy?" He
laughed sardonically.

"Why, yes," replied the young man.

"I wonder," he mused, "if you would have thought him as entertaining if
you knew the part he has played in my life."

"In your life?" queried Myra and Guy in the same breath.

"In my life," repeated Hora with deliberation. Then he continued in
accents which showed how deeply memories of the past rankled: "That is
the man, Guy, to whose actions my quarrel with the world is due. Owing
to him I found every man's hand raised against me. Owing to him I was
compelled in self-defence to raise my hand against every man. Owing to
him I became another Ishmael--thrust out into the world, branded, a
mark for every man's scorn and every woman's jeers. Oh, I have taken my
revenge upon the scorners," he laughed harshly, "but not upon him--not
upon him--yet."

He paused, and once more, it was only with an effort that he regained
control of himself. He did not again trust himself to speech. He turned
on his heel abruptly. At the door he paused.

"You have given me much to think about, Guy," he said. "At present I am
unable to think calmly. Some other time I will discuss the matter with
you."

He left the room swiftly and the firm step of his sound leg and the
following shuffle as he dragged the other foot along after it was the
only sound to be heard until the closing of another door told Myra
and Guy that he had shut himself in his own apartment.



CHAPTER III

THE MAKING OF A CRIMINAL


The philosophy of Lynton Hora had for once given way under the stress
of a deep emotion. There could be no doubt about that, and no doubt
either that the emotion which had strained the philosophy to breaking
point was the emotion of hate.

Never before had Guy seen him so wrought upon. Often he had regretted
that the man he called father should have been of so calm a
temperament--regretted even while he admired. Himself of an impulsive,
even ardent nature, he had longed to express his feelings to the one
being who had been his sole companion from infancy, who had treated
him with unfailing and unvarying kindness, but who chilled, with what
appeared to be temperamental coldness, any expression of affection.

Guy was thrilled with the discovery that a deep sea of passion underlay
Hora's cold exterior. If Hora hated, of necessity he must love.

He must love him, Guy Hora, his son. Did not every action in his life
show it?

The thought awakened Guy's memory actively. His earliest memories
were of the Commandatore. He had no knowledge of a mother, or but
shadowy recollections, and those might merely be the offspring
of his own imagination. Lynton Hora had been father and mother
both. Guy could recall Hora's face bending over his bed in
the days of his babyhood. He had one vivid recollection of being parted
from his father when he himself was about seven years old. He had been
left in the charge of some dark-haired, swarthy-faced people, and they
had neglected him--had beaten him. How he had cried for his father, and
when his father had returned, he remembered running to him and sobbing
out his tale of misery. He remembered how Hora had told him that men
never cried when they were hurt, and that he, stricken with shame,
had answered that it was not the beating but the loneliness which had
brought the tears to his eyes.

Hora had smiled and had left him alone for a few minutes. He had smiled
still more when he had returned. Guy remembered seeing the man who had
beaten him later that same day with a bruised face and an arm hanging
helpless in a sling from his neck.

But that was not his most vivid memory of Hora's return. Chiefly it was
a conversation that took place when Hora had taken the boy's hand and
led him up into the mountains. Often the boy had recalled the words
which had been spoken to him. He could never see a pine tree without
their being fresh spoken to his ear, for they had been uttered beneath
the pine woods, on the edge of a translucent mountain lake, which
mirrored the snowy peaks above it so perfectly that it seemed strange
that the pebbles at the bottom could not be counted.

Hora had taken the boy's tears as his text.

"Women weep when they are hurt," he said. "Men strike back.
Remember that, Guy; remember too that if you cannot strike with the
arm, there are other ways of driving the blow home."

Though Guy had understood the meaning of Hora's words but dimly then,
he had remembered them, and later he understood. Hora had often
given him practical illustration of his precepts. He never forgot an
injury or a slight, and Guy was often allowed to see how Hora avenged
either. Memory has no chronological exactitude, and as Guy allowed
his thoughts to drift, an instance occurred to him which had happened
some years later. They had been travelling in France together and
had been hurrying on to Italy. The one other traveller in the same
compartment had been a blusterous Englishman of the most unpleasantly
self-assertive type. Hora had attempted to engage him in conversation
and had met with a surly repulse. When the frontier was reached, the
assertive person was asleep. Hora had dexterously possessed himself
of the man's watch and when the custom's official made his appearance
had transferred, with equal dexterity, the watch to his pocket,
leaving a portion of the chain visible. When awakened, the Englishman
discovered his loss almost immediately. The official was before him
asking him in a language he did not comprehend, whether he had any
dutiable articles to declare. The visible piece of chain caught the
eye of the excited passenger. He made a grab at the presumed thief.
The official, thinking he was being attacked by a madman, made a wild
dive for the door and reached the platform. The Englishman followed
in pursuit and captured his man. There was a wild melée, from which
the victim did not emerge victorious. When the train moved on, Hora
was gratified by seeing their late companion ineffectually struggling
in the grasp of half-a-dozen stalwart carabinieri.

Guy was fifteen years old when this event had happened, and long before
then he had imbibed from his father ideas of morality which were
directly at variance with those generally accepted. Guy could never
remember a time when Hora had bade him restrain any desire. How well
he recalled a day, he could not have been more than six, when they had
passed a shop wherein a basket of golden oranges were displayed. "Buy
me one," he had cried. Hora had stopped. There was no one in the shop.
"I'll teach you a new game," he said. "Go and fetch a couple, Guy. Mind
you choose the best," he said.

Guy had obeyed and Hora had praised him. As Guy ate the oranges he
thought the game the best he had ever heard of. Next day they had
passed the shop and Guy was about to repeat the foray, but Hora had
restrained him.

"Look, Guy," he said. "There is somebody there now; when you want
oranges or anything else without paying you must be quite sure there is
no one about, or you will lose the game."

Guy remembered the precept and acted upon it. It was a delightful new
game for anyone to play, if you were only clever enough to play it
properly. He used to beg Hora to take him out for a day's stealing,
and sometimes, as a reward for perseverance in his studies, Hora
would accede to the boy's request. He had no notion that he was doing
anything wrong, though he had been taught that there were things he
must not do. He knew that he must not tell his father a lie; he knew
too that he was to be silent when bidden.

Of course a time had eventually arrived when he had become
conscious that there was some lack of harmony between the life he and
his father led and the lives of those upon whom they preyed. Hora had
taken the boy to see a big penal establishment and his curiosity had
been stirred as to the reason of this gathering of men in mud-coloured
garb, marked all over with broad arrows. "Why are they all dressed
alike? Why do their masters carry guns?" he asked.

Hora had silenced him with a sign at the time, but later, when they
were alone, he had explained.

"They are all men who have been trying to play the game of stealing and
have lost," he said. "If you were to get caught, you would be taken
away and shut up at night in a cell all alone, and dressed in ugly
clothes, and when you went out men with guns would be set to watch you
so that they should shoot you if you tried to run away."

"Have you ever been caught, father?" Guy asked.

Hora had never replied to that question. His face had grown so dark
that Guy had forborne to press for an answer, and the memory of the
singular expression which had passed over his countenance had been
sufficient to prevent Guy ever repeating the enquiry.

After the visit to the convict establishment, Guy had been timorous
at playing his new game, but Hora had chaffed him, advised him, stood
beside him, protected him, until he became exceedingly dexterous in a
variety of forms of petty larceny. He was never allowed at this time to
mix with other boys. Hora had him always under his own eye, educating
him according to a system which was a fair sample of the average boy's
education as regards matter, but differing vastly from the average
boy's education as regards the application of the knowledge imparted
to him.

Cæsar was never to him a mere handbook by which the intricacies of
a dead language were revealed, but a wonderful history of a man who
played the game of stealing in a great way. Hora made quite clear to
the boy's mind that there was only a difference in degree between the
stealing of oranges and the stealing of kingdoms, but that if one
wanted to steal kingdoms it was just as well to begin early and learn
the principles of the art by stealing oranges. He explained, too, that
the world looked with very different eyes upon the theft of a crown
and the theft of an orange or an apple. The man who annexed an empire
was an emperor whom men acclaimed and set on a throne in a garb of
purple, while the man who stole a loaf of bread to assuage his hunger
was a petty thief at whom the world hurled opprobrium and thrust into
a prison, garbed in mud-coloured clothes and covered over with broad
arrows.

Guy began to comprehend what Hora intended him to comprehend, that
there was something mean about petty theft, and he no longer found
pleasure in his game, but turned instead to the weaving of romances of
magnificent depredations.

Even the fiction which was supplied by Hora for the boy's
amusement was insidiously utilised for the inculcation of the
same perverted morality. With Robinson Crusoe, for instance, it
was easy for a man of Hora's equipment to make fun of Crusoe's
naïve dependence upon Providence and his exhibition of piety in
moments of stress. Hora pointed out that Crusoe's prayers were
mere expression of the terror of an uneducated mind when
confronted with personal danger--of a mind which had been trained in
youth to rely upon supernatural agencies for relief and comfort. He
pointed out that Crusoe really secured his own safety through the
exercise of his own constructive and observatory powers, and through no
other agency.

As Guy grew older, Hora sedulously built upon the foundation of
disbelief which he laid down as the basis of the boy's education. Guy
was taught that religion was merely the means by which a priestarchy
levied toll upon the body corporate by playing upon inherited
superstitions--while history supplied him with plenty of illustrations.
History supplied him, too, with plenty of examples to point the
arguments with which he supported what was in effect a complete
criminal philosophy. Guy was not taught only that atheism was the hope
of humanity. Hora had read much of Nietzsche, and he skilfully adopted
the Nietzschean philosophy to his purpose. A particular appeal to Guy's
mind was to be found in Hora's definition of virtue, as a thirst for
danger and courage for the forbidden. As translated by Hora, both in
precept and in practice, the highest virtue was to be found in the
breaking of laws. He imbibed the doctrines with avidity, for Hora had a
persuasive tongue. He learned at the same time to keep them to himself,
for, as Hora explained, if sheep knew as much as men, men would have no
mutton.

Until eighteen, Guy's education progressed under his father's tuition,
and then, feeling sure of him, Hora thought it time to launch him on
the world. Guy went to Oxbridge to make acquaintance with his fellows,
to survey the flock of sheep which were to supply him with mutton
in the future. The time then passed pleasantly enough, and plenty of
active exercise supplied him with a vent for his energies. He did
not shear any of the sheep, for Hora had bidden him stay his hand. A
blameless university career would, he knew, be of great value in the
future.

When Guy came down from the University it was with the reputation
of being one of its wildest spirits. Great things were predicted of
him. Others might excel him in individual efforts in the field and
the schools, but none could excel him in fearlessness of demeanour.
Besides, Hora's education had supplied him with a serene belief in
himself, which had been communicated to those with whom he came in
contact. He had been the leader of a set, the model for the freshman,
the autocrat of his time. Like most autocrats, he cherished a profound
contempt for those who bowed down before him. He was to them as his
father was to him, something so much greater than they that their
tribute became merely a thing of no account. He understood why his
father had no affection for him. How could anyone love the thing
beneath; the moth could love the star, but the star could not love the
moth--and----

Guy awoke from the reverie into which he had been betrayed by his
father's emotion on hearing the name of Captain Marven mentioned. He
was quite alone. Myra had left the room after vainly trying to engage
his attention. His hand unconsciously sought his pocket, and, when he
drew it out, he held in his palm the snuff-box he had reserved for
himself from the booty he had brought home on the previous night.
He gazed earnestly at the miniature set in the lid.

"So Captain Marven is father's enemy," he muttered, "and this--this
must be a portrait of Captain Marven's daughter."

His face grew troubled. His brow puckered. He thrust the box back into
his pocket and rose impatiently from his seat.

"Bah!" he said, "what says the Commandatore? Man
is trained for war, and woman for the relaxation
of the warrior; all else is folly."



CHAPTER IV

THE REFLECTIONS OF LYNTON HORA


There was undoubted reason why the name of Marven should move Lynton
Hora to emotion. It swept him back over the thirty years which bridged
him from his youth. He would not have answered to the name of Hora in
those days; the days when he and Richard Marven--"Gay" Marven--had
been subalterns together in the same cavalry regiment. But the name
he had borne then was buried and forgotten long since, and the young
man who had borne it was dead to the knowledge of the world, though
his virtues and his sins, his memories and hatreds--most certainly his
hatreds--lived actively in the recluse connoisseur and antiquarian,
Lynton Hora.

He had had good reason for burying his earlier self--an all-sufficing
excuse for blotting out his existence from his regimental companions,
from the friends of his youth, from the parents who had wept over his
downfall perhaps even more than they had mourned the presumed death
which had followed his punishment.

The name of Marven had brought vividly before his mind a picture of
the bitterest moment of his life. Never could the memory of that
moment lose the poignancy of its sting. The hollow square in the
barrack yard, the epaulets he had once worn on his shoulder lying on
the ground, the look of scorn on the faces of his brother officers
and reflected on the faces of the men who had been till
then beneath him, for the convicted thief, he saw these things clearly
at the mention of Captain Marven's name.

He had always held that Marven was responsible for his dishonour,
Marven who had everything which he, Hora, had desired and which fate
had denied him. On the day he had first met him envy had entered into
his heart. The contented smile on Marven's face, the expression which
declared that everything is the best possible in the best possible
world, had irritated him. Hora had not shown his irritation! Early in
his youth he had learned to control the expression of his feelings. But
companionship had deepened the irritation day by day. Gay Marven was
the most popular man in the mess, Hora the least. Marven was wealthy,
a credit to a smart cavalry regiment; Hora's allowance barely sufficed
to meet the bare necessary expenditure, and so he was debarred from
indulging in the extravagances which his comrade affected.

Some of them sneered at him and Hora attributed the sneers to Marven's
influence, though wrongfully, and his irritation became anger.

Later, a greater cause of jealousy arose through the interposition of
the essential feminine element in all drama. Hora had fallen hopelessly
in love, and he had reason to think that the affection he had bestowed
would be returned. Then Marven appeared on the scene, and Hora's hopes
had vanished. Marven had only to be natural to dazzle the eyes of all
beholders with the rays of his sunshiny disposition. Hora's temperament
was of an intellectual coldness more likely to provoke esteem than
love. The attack of aerotitis which affected both of them
accentuated in each his natural characteristics. Marven became more
brilliant than ever, Hora more passionately reserved. Then Hora, his
natural judgment in suspension, had imagined that it would be possible
to out-dazzle Marven. Reckless of consequences, he joined in all the
pursuits from which he had hitherto stood aloof. His useful charger
had been replaced by two magnificent mounts. His tailor had been made
temporarily happy by a swiftly swelling account. He had begun to
entertain lavishly--a year's income, apart from his pay, would not have
met one single week's expenditure. He had known that the pace could not
last, but fate had been kind to him at the outset. He had speculated
on the turf and had won. From the card table, too, he rarely rose a
loser and the play that went on in the card room of the mess, when the
Colonel was not there, would have genuinely shocked the commanding
officer, had he been aware of the amount of the stakes at issue. Hora's
comrades thought he had come in for a legacy, and he was no longer
deemed a discredit to their ranks.

Though delayed, the day when the inevitable reckoning was to be met
could not be averted forever. When fortune frowned, instead of smiling
upon his turf speculations, he was forced to visit the Jews. There
he could obtain but trifling accommodation, for he had never had any
expectations, and was heir to nothing but an unstained name. Even
the five hundred pounds he had ultimately raised was only advanced
at ruinous interest on a three months' bill. He had plunged more
wildly than ever. He had lost. He had become short of cash to meet
his daily out-of-pocket expenses. Even then, he might have
been saved from utter extinction had not he imagined that he had
succeeded in putting his rival in the shade. He had staked everything
upon one last hazard. There had been under his control certain
regimental funds. He had made use of them, knowing full well that so
soon as his anticipated engagement was announced he would have no
difficulty in obtaining a further loan, since the object of rivalry
between Marven and himself was wealthy, as well as beautiful. With
that loan he had counted on being able to replace the money he had
embezzled. But Marven was before him, and the day Marven's engagement
to Beatrice Challys was announced an unexpected investigation of Hora's
accounts by the Colonel of the regiment disclosed the defalcation. Hora
was placed under arrest, and the torrent rushed over him.

When he had reached his own apartment, Lynton Hora spared himself not
a single pang of bitterness of the memories of what had followed.
The weary days under arrest, the long-drawn-out inquiries, the court
martial, the day of the promulgation of the sentence, when he was
drummed out of the regiment, and had walked out of the barrack yard
into the hands of the civil police, who were awaiting him to bring him
to further trial.

He had been spared nothing. There was no influence which could
have been exerted to save him from any one of the ignominies
which he had incurred. He had supplied an excellent example
for exhibiting the impartiality of the law. No private in the
ranks should be able to say that he received harsher treatment
than the officer of a crack cavalry regiment.

He had faced his punishment bravely, indeed, he had welcomed the
solitude of the cell when he had eventually exchanged his cavalry dress
for another of H. M.'s uniforms. There he had not to meet the scorn of
men's eyes.

One by one he recalled the incidents. They had never ceased to pain
him, even though he tried to laugh at his weakness in imagining that
the wound to his pride still rankled. But he would not have been
without that smarting sore. He took the same fierce satisfaction in the
pain with which the martyrs of Smithfield solaced themselves as they
thrust their arms into the fire. He told himself always that the mental
suffering, the intolerable scorn he had faced, had shown him the world
as it is, and not as it pretends to be. He postulated a deceitful,
hypocritical world with a smile on its face for the man of wealth, and
a frown and a brick for the poor devil who had the will to enjoy and
not the means to gratify his longings.

Before his disgrace he had hated only one man--afterwards he hated all
men, and at least one woman--she who preferred Gay Marven, fortune's
favourite, to himself, fortune's scapegoat. But in addition to enabling
him to appreciate the smiles and frowns of the world at their proper
worth he told himself that his experience had made a man of him. It
certainly left him a purposeful, resourceful, scrupleless being, with a
definite object in existence.

That object was revenge. Revenge on the world which had scorned him,
revenge on the world which had labelled him criminal, revenge above all
upon Marven.

He had made all his plans long before his sentence had
expired. He saw that he must die to the world if the future was to
have any promise at all, for a past, such as his, would have been an
incubus no man might carry for long. So, when his term of imprisonment
was over, he disappeared in the broad light of day. At least the
ex-convict disappeared from English eyes when he sculled out to sea
in a fair-weather craft from a south coast watering-place. A day or
two later the overturned boat was picked up with the ex-convict's coat
still entangled in the seat, and with his ticket-of-leave still in the
pocket. There was nothing to connect the Lynton Hora who a few weeks
later landed from an English tramp steamer at an Italian port with the
missing man.

Hora had not found existence present many difficulties. He had buried
his scruples with his identity, and a man of brains, with courage and
no scruples, need never look very far for the means of subsistence.
For a while he preyed on British tourists. They were of his own race,
and, therefore, his chiefest enemies, and, besides, he knew that, since
he would need a place where he might build a reputation and a new
identity if his purposes were to be fulfilled, it would be unwise to
prey upon the inhabitants of the selected spot. Italy appealed to him.
He became to all intents and purposes Italian. An English soap-maker's
wife, "seeing" the Eternal City, supplied him, unwittingly, with funds
to purchase a vineyard in Tuscany. He stocked his farm and furnished
a house with the contents of a duchess' jewel casket. The capital
necessary for pursuing his agricultural operations was provided
indirectly by the Casino authorities at Monte Carlo. Hora had ventured
no stake at the tables. He had merely relieved a successful
gambler of his winnings. Thus provided with a home, he had paid a visit
to England. When he returned, six months later, he brought his reputed
son with him, a child of three; and away in England, his old comrade,
now Captain Marven, together with Mrs. Marven, had mourned beside an
empty cot in their nursery.

Hora had succeeded in the initial step towards the accomplishment of
his revenge. But this had been only the first step. His appetite was
not to be sated with one simple meal of vengeance. His rival, like
himself, should never be allowed to forget his loss. So punctually
every year, on the anniversary of the stolen boy's birthday, Marven
had received a brief type-written note stating that the child was
alive and well--nothing more. Hora would gladly have signed the note
with his forgotten name, but that thereby he might have incurred
danger to himself and the overthrow of his whole scheme of revenge.
When the appointed time came, when the child was full grown, when by
his own acts the child should be damned beyond all redemption--then
the woman who had refused his offer of marriage should have her son
restored to her, the rival who had won that woman's love from him
should have the paternity of the criminal thrust upon him, and the
whole world should be made aware of Guy's real parentage. That was
the complete scheme of revenge Hora contemplated; to consummate
which he had instilled into the baby ears the subtle poison of his
perverted morality, had skilfully taken advantage of the boy's
adventurous nature to interest him in the romantic possibilities
of a criminal career, had laboured and watched the unfolding of a
mind with the patience of a Japanese gardener producing a
dwarfed and twisted miniature of a fair tree of the forest.

He had been discreet in his work. He had no intention of making of his
pupil a rod for his own scourging. His conception of the great criminal
he desired to make of Guy had nothing in common with the average
conception of a person given to indulgence in all the commonplace
vices of humanity. Self-control he had early realised was of more
importance to the man who was waging single-handed warfare with the
world, than to the units of the community with whom he was at issue.
His own predilections, too, were instinctively refined. The grosser
forms of self-indulgence had never appealed to him. He was an epicure
of life, and had no desire to spoil his palate with a surfeit of coarse
pleasures. Clean living himself, he demanded cleanliness of life in
those about him. To what happened outside of his own household he was
cynically indifferent.

Guy had proved a credit to his training. He was healthy in body, full
of the enthusiasm of living, and possessed of a fine rapture for the
profession to which he had served his apprenticeship. Almost the time
was ripe for the consummation of Hora's revenge, when chance had
brought Guy into contact with his real parents. This was a contingency
Hora had not foreseen, and it needed careful consideration. He did
not fear that the relationship would be disclosed. Guy himself had no
suspicion of the facts. He knew no parent but Hora, though he believed
that he remembered the mother whom Hora had invented for his benefit,
whose portrait hung on the wall of his bedroom, and of whom Hora
had spoken to him on many occasions. Yes, Guy Marven's real
identity was sufficiently sunken in that of Guy Hora to ensure him
against discovery, even though physical likeness should lead to comment.

Yet, Hora's first emotion, on learning that his foster-son had met
his father and mother, was one he thought he had banished forever.
A sensation of fear had passed over him, a dread lest the natural
inclination of son to mother should manifest itself, lest the blood
which pulsed eagerly in the son's arteries should cry out to the blood
which ran more sluggishly in his father's veins, and, his own mock
relationship disestablished, there be destroyed the living instrument
for his revenge he had spent so many years in fashioning. Nor had
his only fear been for the loss of his whole scheme of revenge. He
realised, for the first time, that his interest in Guy was more than
that of the artist in his artistry. Guy had always looked to him, had
repaid him for his attention with all the warmth of an affectionate
nature. He was the one being in whom, save Myra, Hora had taken a
personal interest. Suppose someone else were to take his, Hora's, place
in the young man's thoughts? The dread was in his mind, though he would
not acknowledge it--though he denied its existence. That would be a
piece of sentimentalism utterly foreign to his whole nature. He told
himself that he had no affection for the child of his adoption, save
that of the master craftsman in his tool. Of course he would regret the
necessity, when it arose, of giving the tool to destruction, but he
would admit to himself no warmer interest in Guy's fate than that.

Self-persuaded on the point, he considered whether the meeting, of
which he had been apprised, might not be utilised for the furtherance
of his plans. Nor was it long before he became persuaded that Fate was
playing into his hands. Supposing that the acquaintance developed into
intimacy. A thousand vague possibilities floated, shadow-like, before
Hora's eyes. He determined that the acquaintance should be continued,
but still fearful, he determined also that Guy should be plunged more
deeply into the vortex of crime than hitherto, so that, struggle and
strive as he might, he should find it impossible to escape. Fortunately
for his purpose, Guy had expressed himself as hungering for further
adventure. Well, Hora was fertile of plans, and he saw very good
reasons why Guy's desires should be humoured. His household saw nothing
more of the Commandatore that day. He remained alone with his thoughts.



CHAPTER V

THE COMMANDATORE MAKES A DEDUCTION


"We are getting near the end of our resources, Guy," remarked Hora
quietly, as he held a glass of port up to the light, sipped the wine,
nodded his head approvingly, and set the glass down gently.

It was the evening of the second day after Hora's exhibition of emotion
upon hearing the name of Marven. He had not referred again to the
object of his hatred, and neither Myra nor Guy, who sat with him at the
table, had prompted his memory.

Guy looked round the room before he answered. He had been well trained
in the observance of caution. But the servants had retired, the door
was closed. The three were alone.

"All London offers replenishment of our empty coffers," he answered
light-heartedly. "Who is to have the honour?" He turned to Myra. "Shall
I peel a peach for you?" he asked.

The woman seemed not to hear the question. She was looking at Hora,
with an appeal in her glance.

Hora answered her glance. "Myra is tired of London," he remarked. "What
do you say, Guy? Shall we finish the campaign now, strike our tents and
retire like contented bourgeoisie to our vineyard to watch the grapes
ripen?"

Guy's eyebrows arched in surprise. "Retire empty-handed?" he
asked incredulously. "Why, what has come upon you, Commandatore?"

"Myra is tired," he answered briefly.

Guy looked, smilingly, at her. She flushed slightly. "Not a bit of
it," he answered. "I am quite sure she does not desire to exchange the
delights of a London season, even for the _dolce far niente_ of an
Italian summer."

"I should not mind," she answered. "London is a beastly place. The
Commandatore is right. I am sick of the sight and sound of people, and
of the perpetual menace of our life--I----"

Hora checked her speech with a gesture. The door opened and a servant
entered with coffee, and while he was present the conversation passed
lightly over topics of the day.

"I don't like that man," said Guy, as the servant withdrew. "I caught
him prying about amongst my belongings the other day when I returned to
the flat unexpectedly."

"All servants do that," murmured Hora indifferently. "Curiosity is the
mental badge of servitude. The servant is never happy until he has
surprised one of his master's secrets. It would be just as well, Guy,
if you were to supply him with a few facts to exercise his imagination
upon. Get some girl to write you a few love letters and hide them where
he can find them. He will never be at a loss then to supply a reason
for any erratic movement of yours."

Guy laughed. "Not a bad suggestion," he agreed. "Do you adopt the same
plan to protect yourself?"

Hora shrugged his shoulders. "I carefully built up my own reputation
in advance," he remarked. "Haven't I told you? I suppose not, for
you were both too young when I first located myself here." He looked
round the pleasant dining-room complacently. "I've had the place for
ten years now, and for one's name to be for ten years in the London
directory, at the same address, is a certificate of respectability
which is not easily discredited."

"Still I wonder that you did not seek greater privacy," remarked Guy,
as he lit a cigarette.

Hora smiled. "A decision for privacy always awakens suspicion, and
thus in our profession privacy _de facto_ is perhaps the one
luxury we cannot afford. Nevertheless a greater degree of privacy is
possible in the midst of a crowd than would be possible anywhere else
in the wide world. This is not such a paradoxical statement as it
sounds. In the crowd no one is intent on the doings of his neighbours.
Put a ring-fence round a man, and every eye would be fixed upon him.
Thus you see my reason for selecting a residential flat for my London
residence. The servants are not mine. Each of them has half a dozen
other objects of curiosity. When they have attended to our requirements
they disappear."

"But, nevertheless, they must be curious concerning the contents of the
art gallery?"

The allusion was to a portion of the abode into which the servants were
not supposed to enter. Though situated on the eighth story, Hora's
flat at Westminster Mansions was not the ultimate achievement of the
builder. Above were attics to which a narrow staircase gave entrance.
The stairs were shut off by a door, and the door was always locked.

"When I see any signs of curiosity I always take an early opportunity
of gratifying it," said Hora. "Every one of the servants who has
ever waited upon me has had the privilege of inspecting that chamber,
and not one of them has ever been sufficiently interested to enter it
a second time, except at my especial request. You see they are all
aware why I took possession of the attic. They think it is the fad of
a nervous invalid. Those attics were entered from another staircase
when first I took the flat, and some of the servants slept there. I
complained of the noise, continually. Half a dozen of the poor devils
must have been dismissed at one time or another for purely imaginary
offences in consequence. Then I declared I could stay no longer, and I
gave notice to leave. The agent for the landlord was apologetic, and
asked if there was no way in which he would not be able to meet me. I
offered to rent the place, saying that I would make it into a storeroom
for the books and trifles which I am continually accumulating. He
jumped at the offer I made, and I know he thought me a fool." Hora
chuckled. "How surprised he would be to learn that the proceeds of
many a rich haul have been stored there for months. But I have drifted
away from my original point. I was telling you of the manner in which
I built up my original reputation for eccentricity, the safest cloak a
man may wear. It was a simple matter. I merely answered for myself the
references I gave to my landlord. I described myself as an unfavourable
tenant from every point of view, but the pecuniary one. My habits I
described as irregular, my requirements exacting to a degree, my manner
brusque and overbearing, and my disposition faddy and changeable, and
further said I was given to making continual requests for structural
alterations in any dwelling place that I occupied in order to make
accommodation for any new collecting craze which seized me."

"I wonder any landlord ventured to accept you," laughed Myra.

"The London landlord has a high opinion of his capability for
withstanding the demands of his tenants," said Hora drily. "He is a
man lavish of promises, but meagre of fulfilments, and possessed of a
genius for extracting the uttermost farthing of his rent. Moreover, he
would take Satan himself as a tenant if he offered to pay six months'
rent in advance. Naturally I proved acceptable, and not turning out to
be the terror I depicted myself I am now looked upon as the best tenant
in the whole building. I am free to do as I like. My treasure-house
ceases to excite curiosity, and I believe if I were to place the crown
jewels upon one of the tables up there they would be undisturbed, so
long as my rent was paid regularly, until they were hidden beneath the
accumulated dust of ages."

The allusion gave Guy an idea.

"Do you contemplate an imitation of Colonel Blood's exploit for the
replenishment of our empty exchequer?" he said, smiling.

"I have often envied Blood's opportunities," answered Hora
thoughtfully, "but at the present day there are much greater
difficulties in the way than Blood had to contend with. Some day,
perhaps, but just now I have another scheme in my mind." He rose from
the table. "I have something to tell you," he remarked. "You will
excuse me for a minute."

He left the room. As the door closed on Hora, Myra turned eagerly to
her companion. She felt that, despite her promise to Hora, she must
give utterance to the fears which once again possessed her mind.

"Guy," she said, "I wish you would persuade the Commandatore to leave
London for a while. He would listen to any wish of yours."

"Do you think so?" he asked. "I don't think that any expression of mine
would turn him from any purpose he has in view."

"But can you not try?" she persisted. "For my sake, Guy."

"Why, whatever is the matter with you, Myra?" asked the young man, his
attention captured by the obvious anxiety in her voice. "Surely you are
not becoming afraid?"

"Becoming afraid?" she repeated after him mechanically. "No, I am
not becoming afraid. I learned what fear was long ago, when first
I ventured to put my own desires in opposition to the will of the
Commandatore. I have always been afraid since then." She fell to
silence.

"There's no reason to fear the Commandatore," answered Guy cheerfully.
"You are growing morbid, Myra."

She paid no heed to his comment. "It is not fear now, or at least not
what is generally understood by fear. There is an oppression in the
air, the weight of something unseen and unknown presses on me."

"But there is nothing for you to fear. Whatever were to happen you
would be quite safe," argued Guy.

"Myself? It is not myself I am thinking about," she cried passionately.
"Whatever impends does not threaten me. It is you, Guy, I fear for.
Ever since the night of Lady Greyston's dance I have felt it. I
thought you would never return that evening, but you came back, and
for a while I could laugh at my fears. But, now the Commandatore has
some other proposal to make, my dread has returned. I shall not have a
moment's rest."

"Why this is sheer hysteria, if not madness," said Guy in great concern.

"Call it what you like," she replied earnestly, "but listen to what I
say--promise me!"

She heard Hora's lagging footstep in the passage outside, and she
ceased speaking suddenly. "Not a word of this to the Commandatore," she
said hastily, as the door opened, and Hora re-entered.

If the elder man observed that his re-entry had broken in upon a
confidence from which he was excluded, he gave no signs of having done
so. Myra breathed more freely when he seated himself again at the
table, and spread out a newspaper he had brought with him on the table.

"There are three items of news in this evening's paper," he remarked
quietly, "which supply the data from which may be deduced the means
whereby an enterprising man may build a fortune."

Guy was all attention on the instant, and Myra, viewing his keen face,
let her head droop upon her hand.

"Those items are?" queried the young man, as Hora paused.

"You will find the first in the Court News," was the reply. "The Rt.
Hon. Sir Gadsby Dimbleby, who is the minister in attendance upon His
Majesty the King, arrived at Sandringham last night."

"The Minister of Foreign Affairs, is he not?" asked Guy.

Hora nodded, and turned to another page from which he read: "Just
before the close all markets sagged badly on selling orders from
Berlin. A variety of rumours were afloat as to the reason, but no
definite information which would supply justification for a bear raid
on the market was forthcoming from any well-informed quarter. In
the street, afterwards, prices were put up again generally, though
fluctuations were considerable."

"Yes," said Guy, beginning to look puzzled.

"The third item is a mere addition to the Reuter's telegram from
Australia, giving particulars of the cricket match between the English
and Australian teams. The result is placed in the space left for late
news, and over it are the words "delayed in transmission.""

Hora ceased speaking.

"If the rehabilitation of our fortunes depends upon translating that
puzzle we shall end our days in the workhouse yet," said Guy.

"Yet, there is much wealth for the man who can piece together those
scraps of information, and will act promptly on the knowledge,"
answered Hora.

"How? By speculation on the Stock Exchange?" asked Guy. "I thought,
Commandatore, that you eschewed all forms of gambling."

"I do," said Hora drily. "But to buy and sell on a certainty has
nothing of the gambling element about it. I feel inclined to make
either the bulls or the bears contribute to our maintenance.
But action must be prompt if it is to succeed. There is work
for you to do to-night, Guy, if you care about it."

"Care about it?" The young man sprang to his feet, every fibre of his
frame quivering for action.

Hora laughed good-naturedly. "There--there, Guy, take matters a bit
easily. There's plenty of time before you yet, if you decide to go on
with the job. It's more risky than the last."

"The greater the risk, the better I shall be pleased," exclaimed Guy,
as he dropped again into his chair, "though how you are going to evolve
anything of a risky nature from those paragraphs you have just read, I
entirely fail to understand."

"You'll understand soon enough," remarked Hora quietly, "and you
will then be surprised that the meaning of these three items of news
should have conveyed so little to you. Let me reverse the order and
read into these three facts my own conclusions. What can be the reason
for the delay in the transmission of the cable containing the cricket
result? Either the cable had broken down, or it was monopolised for
more important work. The former theory is untenable, for if you take
the trouble to compare the time of the insertion of the news with
the time when it should have been inserted, you will find a delay of
three or four hours only has to be accounted for. Thus I arrive at the
decision that the cable was fully occupied by someone with a prior
claim for its use. Who could that be? Here again the choice is between
two possibilities. Either some big financier or body of financiers or
the Government. Again the indications point to one conclusion. The
City was merely uneasy by reason of German selling, which could not
be accounted for, and not because of information which had come over
the wires. Therefore, the wires must have been occupied by
important despatches to the British Government. I think," said Hora,
"that if the knowledge of what has passed over the cable is in my
possession by to-morrow morning, we shall be in a position to spoil the
Egyptians of Throgmorton Street to some purpose."

Guy looked at Hora with admiration. Some idea of his companion's
purpose dawned upon him--but only faintly. He asked eagerly for further
guidance.

"As to the nature of the despatch which has been received at the
Foreign Office, I have no more idea than yourself," he continued,
"though it probably affects Germany, and it is hardly worth while
troubling to guess. I am only concerned with times, places, and people.
As I calculate, the cable was not clear for ordinary business until
close upon six o'clock. Six would, therefore, be very near the time
when the end of the message was delivered at the Foreign Office.
Of course it would have been cabled in the official cypher. By the
time the message would be de-coded there is only one train by which
a special messenger could take the de-coded despatch to his chief,
who happens to be the minister in attendance upon His Majesty at
Sandringham."

Hora looked up at the clock. "That train starts from St. Pancras at
9.50. It proceeds as far as Lynn, where the messenger carrying the
despatch will probably be met by a motor-car. It is just nine o'clock
now, Guy, so there is plenty of time for you to decide whether it is
worth while making an effort to obtain the information which will be in
his despatch box."

Guy's eyes sparkled. "It's worth while trying
any way, Commandatore." He turned to the young
woman. "Wish me luck, Myra," he said.



CHAPTER VI

WHEREIN A KING'S MESSENGER IS DESPOILED OF HIS DESPATCHES


Guy had ten minutes to spare as he stepped out of the cab at St.
Pancras Station, and, handing a bag to a porter, made his way leisurely
to the booking office and took a ticket for Lynn. He would have been
easily recognised by any of his acquaintance, for he had made no effort
to disguise himself. Hora professed no liking for physical or material
disguises, contending, indeed, that such were merely the clumsy devices
of incompetence. "The man who anticipates being seen in any affair in
which he is not prepared to meet scrutiny is anticipating failure,"
he was accustomed to declare. "In all other cases," he had told Guy,
"your own identity will be your most certain protection. A bourgeois
reputation for wealth and half a dozen society acquaintances will
provoke apologies from inquisitive persons when a mere hint that you
had dyed your moustache would mean instant arrest." Guy was disposed to
agree with him. He disliked the theatrical, as much as he was enamoured
of the dramatic, aspect of his profession.

Yet on this occasion he had not been long on the platform before he
was betrayed into the wish that for once he had assumed some disguise.
The porter to whom he had entrusted his bag had deposited it in the
corner of a first-class smoking compartment, and Guy strolled along
the waiting train, glancing into each compartment in turn, in order to
locate the messenger who, if Hora's deductions were correct, was to
travel by it. He had made no plans as to the means he was to take to
obtain a knowledge of the despatches. Nor had Hora made any suggestions.

"I leave the matter entirely in your hands, Guy," he had said. "If you
see a favourable opportunity, take it. Opportunity only passes by the
unobservant. Still, such may be lacking, and if none presents itself
do not strive to make one. One failure in our profession is the end
of a career. I don't want to see your career cut short yet. It is a
difficult task you have undertaken, and I shall not be surprised if no
opportunity presents itself. Don't think I shall blame you."

The words were in his mind, as he passed coach after coach, and saw
no one who seemed at all likely to be the messenger bearing the
despatches. He returned to the door of the compartment where his bag
lay. A porter came to the door, glanced in, then opened the door
of the next compartment, and pasted a little label "reserved" on
the window. Guy, standing on the platform, looked at the entrance
a dozen yards distant. He became conscious of a little thrill of
excitement in the thought that Hora's deductions were likely to be
proved accurate. It was the next instant that he wished that he had
concealed his identity. A passenger made his appearance and the moment
their eyes met Guy recognised him, even as he knew he was himself
recognised. It was too late to seek retirement in the train. He stood
still while the newcomer advanced with outstretched hand.

"Guy Hora, if I'm not mistaken, by all that's lucky. Going anywhere on
this train, eh?"

Mechanically Guy took the offered hand. There was no need for him to
attempt to infuse any surprise into his voice. He could only ejaculate
"Captain Marven!"

"Himself," said Marven, "and as much surprised to find a friend here as
you are." He glanced into the compartment where Guy's bag remained.

"Unless you want to sleep undisturbed, I should propose that we travel
together," he remarked.

"If I might intrude," begun Guy hesitatingly.

"Intrude? You don't know how delighted I shall be," said Marven
heartily. He beckoned the porter who stood holding open the door of
the reserved compartment. "Put this gentleman's bag in here," he said.
"Now, jump in," he continued to Guy.

The young man obeyed. The porter closed the door, touched his cap, and
turned away. Captain Marven tossed a bundle of magazines on the seat
and settled himself in a corner. "Better to look upon than magazines is
the face of a friend on a five hours' journey," he said laughingly.

"Much better," replied Guy. His first surprise had been succeeded by
a second much greater. Captain Marven's coat had swung back as he
entered the compartment, and Guy had observed beneath it a despatch
case. It flashed upon him that Captain Marven must be the carrier
of the despatches. There seemed to be something uncanny in Hora's
prescience. Fate had given him the opportunity which the Commandatore
had declared awaited the observant, and it remained for Guy to take
advantage of it. But there was a bitter thought commingled with
the realisation of the fact that the opportunity he desired had been
given to him. This man had seemed so friendly disposed towards him
from the moment they first met. There seemed to Guy to be something
particularly mean in an act of treachery towards him. But he had no
opportunity to brood upon the thought, even had he desired to do so,
and he did not desire to contemplate it. Besides, not to take full
advantage of the opportunity would be treachery to the Commandatore,
who was depending upon his success. Guy put aside his new-born
scruples, and concentrated his attention on the business in hand.

He perceived that he would have to make use of all his faculties if he
were to succeed in his object. The man opposite him would not be easily
cozened. But the effort must be made. He began to turn over in his
brain a variety of plans, while he chatted with his companion.

The whistle sounded, doors banged, the train moved out into the night.
There was no escape now. But how was he to gain possession of the
case in Captain Marven's possession without exciting suspicion? As a
stranger, there would have been greater chance of effecting the coup
by some sudden stratagem. But, positioned as he now found himself, he
was practically helpless unless Marven should sleep. Guy looked up at
the Captain's face. It was an alert face, not the face of a man who
sleeps while on duty. It would be difficult to evade the glance of
those cool, grey eyes, trusting as they seemed. The firm mouth and
the set of the jaw told of a character that would not be amenable to
sudden panic. Captain Marven was obviously a soldier. How could it be
that he was carrying despatches for the Foreign Office? What
if he were mistaken? The thought startled the young man from his
reverie to hear his query answered.

Captain Marven was speaking to him, and he had missed the opening
remark. "It's unusual for me to find one of our own set as companion on
my frequent journeyings," he said, "though, of course, one does run up
against friends, occasionally."

"You travel a lot then?" asked Guy mechanically.

"It is the business of a King's messenger," answered Marven drily.

"I didn't know," remarked Guy in genuine surprise, while the thought
flashed into his mind that the despatches must be important indeed,
since they had not been entrusted to the care of one of the ordinary
officials of the Foreign Office. "I had no idea that you belonged to
that select body."

"Nearly twenty years in the service, my boy," answered Marven.
"If I were a motor-car my mileage would be considered something
extraordinary, but being only a man----"

He ended the comment with a laugh.

Guy echoed it.

"I understood that you were----" He was about to add, "a man about town
like myself," but checked himself. Marven laughed and finished the
sentence. "A good-for-nothing idler like yourself, eh, Hora? No," he
continued. "I was once. Indeed, to my eternal regret, I left the army
when I ought to have been thinking seriously of it as a profession.
But I had everything I asked of life then, and I rather chafed at my
duties. Later"--a shadow passed over his face--"I felt a need to do
something which would keep me away from thoughts which--I wanted some
work with movement in it, and, having plenty of influential friends, I
found myself a superior sort of postman."

Almost the elder man had been betrayed into a confidence. Guy,
realising this, again felt a thrill of distaste for the task he had in
hand. Then he wondered if the thoughts from which the King's messenger
desired to escape were in any way connected with the events which were
responsible for the Commandatore's hatred. After all, this man was the
enemy of his, Guy Hora's father. The enemy through whose actions Lynton
Hora had found himself in conflict with the world. Guy hardened his
heart. Most possibly the genial mask of friendship which Captain Marven
wore was the ordinary disguise of hypocrisy. Guile should be met with
guile.

It was with a manner as frank and a smile as confiding as his own that
Marven found his questions responded to.

Indeed, he was genuinely interested in the young man. He had already
discovered at their first meeting that he was of an intelligence
beyond the ordinary. He had observed that Guy had been strongly
attracted by the niece whom his wife was chaperoning for her first
London season, and he thought that it would be well if he could
know more of her admirer. But, beyond all that, Captain Marven
had observed what Guy's younger eyes had missed. He saw in the
younger man something which reminded him of himself in his own
youthful days. A likeness of feature, of carriage, of manner. The
belief that one day the son, his only child, would be restored
to him had been an abiding one. It had been partly responsible
for his adoption of his present profession. Somewhere his
son was growing into manhood. Any day he might meet him.

He made the most of his wide knowledge of the world to secure the
young man's confidence, and flattered himself that he had succeeded.
He was quite unaware that Guy, though wondering at his curiosity, was
responding to his advances in furtherance of his own objects. Guy
talked freely of his boyhood. He spoke with filial affection of his
father, and of the mother he could just remember, and, as he revealed
the particulars of his parentage, Captain Marven's half-formed hopes
withered, and he told himself that his expectancy had given to the
young man a family likeness which had no existence outside his own
imagination. So the train rushed on through the night, bearing father
and son, sitting face to face, yet unrevealed, and while the son
plotted to rob his father of the despatches which honour bade him guard
with his life, the father looked at him again and again, saddened with
the thought of another hope shattered.

The train sped on, stopping now and again to pick up the mails.
Conversation languished. Guy had decided on his course of action.
He determined to try a plan which if unsuccessful, would leave him
time for a second attempt, a plan, the feasibility of which, he had
frequently discussed with his mentor, Lynton Hora.

He surprised Captain Marven in a yawn. "Getting sleepy?" he asked.

Marven smiled. "I don't sleep to-night until my journey is ended."

"What martyrdom to duty," scoffed Guy. "I am almost inclined to save
you from yourself."

Marven looked at him questioningly.

"By demonstrating the power of hypnotism," explained Guy briefly.

"Oh!" Captain Marven laughed. "I am afraid you would not find me an
amenable subject," he said.

"I don't know," replied Guy. "It is astonishingly easy to induce
hypnotic sleep."

Marven smiled doubtingly. He held the belief that hypnotism was a mere
vulgar device of charlatans to impose upon the gullible. He expounded
his views to Guy at length. The young man, stimulating opposition,
by assertion and counter-assertion, at last declared that if Captain
Marven would only lend himself to the experiment he would speedily
prove to his satisfaction that there was substantial grounds for belief
in the realty of hypnotic force.

Captain Marven, serenely satisfied of his invulnerability and amused at
Guy's obstinacy, professed his willingness to submit to any experiment
Guy might suggest. Guy appeared to hesitate at the prompt acceptance.
He declared that he was unprovided with the necessary materials. Marven
chaffed him, seeing in his reluctance doubt in his own beliefs. Guy
remembered that he had in his handbag a small electric torch with a
reflector attached which might serve the purpose of the mesmeric disc
commonly used. He produced it.

Marven, lounging comfortably in his corner, was bidden to divest
his mind of all thought and gaze intently upon the glowing point
of light. With a keen sense of the absurdity of the proceeding,
the King's messenger conscientiously endeavoured to obey the
instructions given him. Silence reigned in the compartment, for two,
three, four minutes. Then Guy rose from his corner, and stood
over his companion, every nerve quivering with the intensity of his
purpose. He laid his hand lightly on Marven's head.

"You are beginning to feel sleepy," he said.

Marven did not contradict him. Already his brain had wandered far
afield from the thoughts which had employed it when he had first fixed
his gaze on the brilliant point of light. He had forgotten that he was
the subject of an experiment. He was dreaming again, dreaming that his
son was found, and that they were going home together. It was such
a pleasant dream that he would not raise his eyes lest it should be
shattered, as such dreams had always been shattered before. Perhaps he
was feeling sleepy. Well, what of it? Surely there was no reason why he
should not sleep?

"You are feeling very sleepy," said Guy. He was watching Marven's eyes
closely, and observed that their lids drooped heavily.

"You will not keep awake much longer," he said.

The point of light seemed suddenly enlarged. It filled Marven's field
of vision. No, he would not be able to keep awake much longer.

"Yes, I am very sleepy," he replied. The voice was mechanical.

Guy's heart bounded triumphantly. His experiment was succeeding
beyond his wildest anticipations. At the most he had hoped to be able
to gain the opportunity to instil a suggestion into a half-drugged
consciousness, which would facilitate his obtaining possession of the
despatches, but now it seemed that he was on the point of entirely
subjugating his companion's consciousness.

"You must close your eyes," he said.

Marven obeyed.

"Stand up," commanded Guy.

Marven raised himself to his feet, but his eyes remained closed.

"You cannot lift your right arm," said Guy.

Some remnant of will yet remained. The hypnotised man strove to raise
his arm. But the effort was a failure, the arm half-lifted from the
elbow dropped again.

"Sit down and sleep comfortably until I awaken you," commanded Guy.

Marven obeyed. He lay back in his corner. His eyes were closed, his
breathing calm and even. To all appearances he was asleep. Guy seated
himself and gazed at the man opposite. Was his experiment indeed
successful, or was Marven merely shamming with a view of ridiculing
his efforts? He inclined to the former belief, yet the ease with which
Marven had succumbed was in itself suspicious. It would be easy to
apply a test.

Guy rose, and, drawing aside the overcoat which Marven wore,
deliberately unbuckled the strap upon which the despatch case was
slung. The Captain never stirred. He was really asleep. Guy looked
at his watch. In another ten minutes the train would be stopping at
Cambridge. Yes, he had just time to carry out the initial stage of his
plan. From his handbag he produced a mass of stiff modelling clay,
and with it he took two impressions of the seals which secured the
fastenings of the case. Then he placed the case and the impressions in
his own bag. Already he was beginning to enjoy the consciousness of
success.

The train ran into Cambridge railway station. Guy
leaned over to his sleeping companion.

"You must have a cup of coffee if you are to keep awake," he said.

The Captain's eyes opened, but they were dull, unseeing.

The train stopped. Guy alighted and Marven followed him to the
refreshment room. Guy ordered coffee. Marven drank his mechanically.

"We must return," said Guy. "The coffee will not keep you awake long."

The guard was standing at the door when they re-entered their
compartment, and he closed it deferentially. Evidently he was aware of
Captain Marven's identity. Guy was glad that he had taken the risk of
awakening Marven; otherwise the railway official's acquaintance might
have proved troublesome.

The train rolled out again into the night.

"You will sleep again," said Guy soothingly.

The Captain composed himself in his corner, and Guy forgot him. Seconds
only passed before the despatch case was open before him, seals broken,
lock picked, and the papers it contained lying in his hand. He groaned
as he saw the voluminous character of the document. Then his eyes
brightened as he caught sight of the précis of the contents attached. A
fountain pen and paper were at his hand, and a copy of the précis was
soon in his possession. Then watch in hand he read the more lengthy
despatch. Ten minutes had passed since leaving Cambridge and another
ten would bring the train to Ely. He returned the papers to the case.
With deftness, born of much practice, the lock was turned again. With
a spirit lamp the wax of the seals was melted and the seal reimpressed
by aid of the carefully oiled clay impression already hardened
sufficiently for the purpose. With a sigh of satisfaction Guy laid the
case on the seat. But the sigh died away. Looking up he was astounded
to find that Captain Marven had awakened, and was standing erect and
with outstretched hand was pointing to the case.

There came upon Guy the impulse for instant flight. But whither? The
impulse did not remain long in possession of him. He saw that Marven
was striving to speak and could not find words, and at the same moment
he realised that his victim was only partially awakened from the
hypnotic state. Collecting all his faculties for a supreme effort Guy
faced him.

"You cannot stand up," he said. "You cannot awaken for two minutes yet."

The Captain hesitated. He seemed to be fighting against an overpowering
desire. But insistently Guy repeated his commands, and with a
despairing gesture, Marven sank back once again into his corner.

Guy waited no longer. The moment Marven was quiescent, he rebuckled the
case to the strap, and disposed it beneath the Captain's coat. Then
he clapped his hands smartly before the sleeping man's face and cried
loudly, "Wake up, Captain Marven, wake up."

Marven came back gradually from his trance. He rubbed his eyes, he
looked wonderingly about him.

"What have you to say about hypnotism now?" asked Guy.

Captain Marven looked puzzled.

"I--I don't quite understand. Do you mean to say that I have slept?"

The train ran into Ely Station.

"Hullo! Where are we? At Cambridge already?" asked Marven.

Guy laughed. "This is Ely," he answered.

"Ely?" repeated the Captain incredulously.

"Yes, Ely," answered Guy. "Don't you remember stopping at Cambridge and
going with me to the refreshment room for a cup of coffee to keep you
awake?"

"Stopping at Cambridge," repeated Marven more incredulously than before.

"It is a fact," answered Guy, and he added, "I hope you will forgive me
having given you so practical an exposition of the fact that there is
something in hypnotism after all."

Captain Marven did not answer immediately. He seemed to be struggling
for recollection. "I have no remembrance of that, but----" By an
instinctive gesture his hand sought the case beneath his coat. His face
lightened as he felt it there. "I've been dreaming, nevertheless,"
he said. "I seem to remember that something in my charge was in your
possession, and that although I struggled to regain possession of it I
could not do so."

"I suppose it was the last impulse of your will to combat the
effort I was making to gain control of it," remarked Guy, secretly
congratulating himself that he had been in time to prevent Marven's
complete awakening before the case had been returned to him.

"No doubt that is the explanation," replied Marven, rising and throwing
open the carriage door. He stepped on to the platform.

"Are you not going to stretch your legs, Hora?" he asked. "We have
twenty minutes here."

Guy joined him, and they paced the platform together. They
chatted on indifferent topics. Then Captain Marven suddenly sprang a
personal question.

"By the way, Hora," he said, "if it's not impertinent to ask, what
made you choose this infernally slow train to come to this part of the
world?"

Guy had long had a lie prepared.

"Laziness," he answered lightly. "I missed the earlier one which would
have taken me on to Hunstanton, where I have an appointment to-morrow
morning. I found that I should be able to get on from Lynn in time to
keep it, and so here I am. I'm glad I missed the fast train, as it has
happened. I hate travelling alone."

Captain Marven made no reply. Guy could see that he was not satisfied,
but he gave no hint that he had observed anything, and, when the
journey was resumed, he kept up an easy flow of talk until Lynn was
reached.

Then he bade Captain Marven good-bye, and, if the King's Messenger
had any suspicion regarding the companion of his journey, there
was no hint of it conveyed in his parting greeting.



CHAPTER VII

MERIEL MAKES AN IMPRESSION


Captain Marven was certainly not at ease in his own mind in regard
to the experience on his journey. He seemed to remember awaking, and
seeing in Guy's possession the despatch box that he carried. Yet in
view of the fact that it was still buckled to the strap, the suspicion
seemed absurd. As soon as he was alone he carefully examined the
despatch case. The seals were to all appearances intact. He missed
none of his personal belongings, and was ashamed of the suspicion
which prompted his hurried search through his pockets. Really he had
no reason to suspect Guy Hora of any ulterior object in hypnotising
him. He recalled all the circumstances. At his own invitation Guy had
travelled with him, he himself had pressed his companion to make the
experiment. He had lost consciousness while Guy was sitting opposite
him, and when he had regained it, Guy was still opposite him, and
certainly did not exhibit the slightest trace of trepidation. But what
had happened in the forty minutes interval which had elapsed between
the losing and regaining of consciousness. Guy had told him that
they had alighted at Cambridge and had drunk a cup of coffee at the
refreshment room. But was that all? He could not banish the thought
of the dream which had come to him during that hypnotic slumber, the
vision of Guy Hora bending over the despatch case doing something to
the seals, and of himself standing powerless to interfere with him. Was
it only a dream? Yet it were foolish to suppose otherwise. What could
the despatches he carried contain of interest to the wealthy young man
about town, who seemed to him so like what his own son might have been?
It was a puzzle which he could not elucidate, though it engaged his
attention during his long motor drive to the royal residence; it was
present in his thoughts when he placed the case in the hands of the
Secretary of State, who, warned by telegraph of his coming, was waiting
up for him, and he could not escape it even when he himself sought
repose. It was the first thought in his mind when he awoke the next
morning.

If he had been gifted with clairvoyant powers, he would not have
needed to flog his brains for a solution. Could he have seen Lynton
Hora gloating over the transcription of the cypher telegram which had
reached him that morning from Guy, Captain Marven would have had an
inkling of the truth. Could he later have seen Lynton Hora sending off
wires to brokers at Paris, Berlin, and New York, could he have heard
Lynton Hora instructing his London stockbroker over the telephone, he
would have been still nearer a solution. Finally, could he have heard
the Foreign Secretary's remarks later in the day, when a detailed
account of an unfortunate incident in the South Pacific, in which a
German gunboat and a British cruiser were concerned, appeared in an
evening paper, he would have known that in some mysterious manner the
information contained in the despatches he had carried had become known
to the world.

Yet, though he knew not, nor could have known, any of
these things, yet the vague uneasiness that there had been intention
in Guy's presence on the train was not easily dispelled. It begot in
him a still greater desire to learn something more of the young man
whose face haunted his thoughts, and when he returned to town the next
morning, carrying with him the answers to the stolen despatches, it
was with the fixed intention of cultivating Guy's acquaintance, if the
opportunity offered.

The chance he desired was not long presenting itself. A week had not
elapsed before they met again. The meeting was a purely casual one.
They recognised each other at the opera. Guy occupied a stall and the
Captain was with his wife and niece in a box. At the end of the first
act Guy left his seat. The Captain met him in the foyer.

"Been trying any more experiments in hypnotism?" was Marven's greeting.

Guy shook his head and laughed. "I haven't been upon any railway
journeys with unbelievers," he replied jestingly. He met the Captain's
glance fearlessly, and again Marven felt ashamed of his suspicions.

"I was just coming to pay my respects to Mrs. Marven and Miss Challys,"
continued Guy.

The Captain turned to accompany him. "You need not tell the ladies
how easily you bowled me out," he remarked. "I have been so blatantly
cynical on the subject always that I should never hear the last of it."

"Why, certainly not," answered Guy, smiling. The Captain's attitude
dispelled the last chance of his being connected in any way with the
acquisition of the information which, when it had been made public, had
created the most intense excitement. Clearly the Captain wished no one
to know that he had allowed himself to be placed in an hypnotic trance
while on duty, and Guy, for his own protection, was more than ready to
fall in with the suggestion to keep silence concerning the episode.

"After all, it is a purely personal matter of absolutely no concern to
anyone but our two selves," he added, as they reached the box.

Conveying his thanks with a nod, Marven opened the door, and, as Guy
entered, all thought of the Captain passed from his mind. Only once
previously had he met Meriel Challys, but the impression which she
had produced upon him was one that would not easily be eradicated.
He had first seen her floating towards him on some booby's arm at
Lady Greyston's dance. Who the booby was and what the booby looked
like Guy had not the faintest idea. He had no time to spare a glance
for anyone else, once his eyes had rested on her face. But the man
on whose arm she leaned so lightly must of necessity be a booby.
Any mere man could be nothing but a booby in comparison with any
personality so exquisitely ethereal as that given by nature to
Meriel Challys. Guy had determined to take the place of that booby
himself. He had enquired amongst his friends until he had obtained
the introduction he desired. He had received one waltz and he had sat
out one square dance in the plumbago bower at the end of the long
gallery. He would never forget the fair picture she made, draped
in maiden garb of white, her dazzling skin and hair framed in the
tender blues of the drooping blossoms. It had been an effort for
him to speak to so distractingly beautiful a subject, and it had
been only the fear lest she should think him moonstruck which
had forced him to unlock his lips. No wonder that the despoiling of
Mr. Flurscheim's treasure-house had been postponed. Indeed, had the
treasures been spread before him at that moment, Guy would have passed
them by unnoticed.

That first impression of instinctive reverence had not endured. A
fervid disciple of Hora's cynical philosophy could not remain for long
in a state of ecstatic adoration of one of the sex provided "for the
relaxation of the warrior."

But now, entering again into her presence, his first impression was
revived with redoubled intensity. Again he saw her coming towards him.
He remembered the Tennysonian line which flashed into his memory at
first sight of her:

    "Robed in white samite, mystic, wonderful."

No, that did not do justice to Meriel Challys, and yet it might,
perchance, describe her in some moods, he thought; and though there was
nothing mystic in her mood when Guy had been introduced, yet the swift
impression was mayhap nearer the truth than the later one.

Mrs. Marven greeted him warmly. They chatted a little while,
then, as Guy turned to the girl, she became a silent observer.
The family likeness which her husband had observed in Guy was
equally apparent to herself, but she had not given words to the
vague thoughts which had risen up in her mind when she had first
seen him at Lady Greyston's dance. Such thoughts were best crushed
down at once--they only invited disillusionment. Not for
worlds would she have suggested to her husband that the young man had
awakened in her the crushed down maternal instinct. The mere hint would
have made him uneasy. She even dreaded lest he should have recognised
for himself certain physical resemblances which certainly existed
between her husband and Guy. She had no idea that he had recognised
them, and was as loth as her husband himself to give words to her
imaginings, for precisely the same reasons which imposed silence upon
him. Each in point of fact had felt the promptings of the parental
instinct, and each in tenderness for the partner of his and of her
sorrows and joys forebore to awaken by a word the memory of the great
sorrow which had early cast its cloud over their married life.

Lynton Hora had always been hopelessly wrong when he had imagined
that but for the rivalry of Marven he would have won the affection
of Beatrice Challys. So far as he was concerned she had always been
heart-whole. But from the day she had met Dick Marven there had
only been one mate for her in the whole wide world. The affection
had been mutually bestowed. Marven lived for his wife, even as
she lived for him. In each of their thoughts the one object for
consideration was their _alter ego_. Marven would have sacrificed
anything to save his wife a momentary pang, physical or mental.
She would have inflicted any torture upon herself that he might be
spared even momentary uneasiness. But this kindly consideration
for each other's feelings did not always prove unexceptionable in
practice. Impalpable, diaphanous, there was a barrier of reserve
ever between them from the day their first born and only child had
been mysteriously spirited away. In so far Hora's scheme for
revenge had been successful in action. It had shadowed the lives of
both the parties upon whom his blow had fallen, and, though in tender
consideration for each other, his action had brought them closer
together, yet it had also operated in placing between them the barrier
of a subject they dared not discuss.

The maternal instinct, deprived of its natural outlet, of necessity had
found another vent. Robbed of her son, Mrs. Marven had taken to her
heart a brother's child, who had been orphaned early in life. The girl
had repaid the devotion lavished upon her, and, if Mrs. Marven could
never quite banish the regret for her lost son, she would always have
heartily admitted that Meriel Challys had brought sunshine again into
her life. Meriel was all that a daughter could be, and a very tender
sympathy existed between her and her aunt.

Naturally the latter could not have failed to observe the admiration
which Guy Hora exhibited toward Meriel. It was patent in his every
glance, and he made no effort to conceal it. He approached Meriel with
the proud assurance of the man who feels that he has the right to lay
the tribute of his admiration at the feet of the woman whom he admires,
and is not ashamed of letting the whole world perceive upon whom his
choice had fallen.

Mrs. Marven liked the attitude, which was so different to that of
many of the admirers whom Meriel had already, in the course of
her first season, gathered in her train. It awakened memories,
too, of the days when Richard Marven had wooed her. His face
had worn the same unconscious air of adoration. Almost Mrs.
Marven's heart stood still, as she watched Guy's face as he stood
leaning forward looking into Meriel's eyes, answering her
smiles with his own; the likeness was so vivid to the memory she bore
in her heart. She would have liked to step forward and claim him. Her
heart cried out "My son, my son," but the words died on her lips. She
crushed them back, though the effort left her lips pale.

Meriel, looking towards her, noticed the pallor and with a hasty, "You
are ill, Auntie," was at her side.

"I find the theatre a little close," murmured Mrs. Marven. "If we might
have the door of the box open a little." She refused all suggestions
that they should leave the opera house, and, before the attempts to
persuade her were completed, the curtain was rung up, the lights were
lowered, and the opera proceeded.

Guy remained in the box. Mrs. Marven sat back in the shadow studying
his face intently. When the second act ended, she had regained
full control of her emotions, and could make light of the supposed
indisposition with which she had apparently been attacked. She pressed
Guy to remain in the box for the remainder of the evening, and he was
nothing loth to accept the invitation.

There, then, he remained, unconscious that he was the centre of
interest to the two elder members of the party, unstirred by any
instinctive emotion towards them, and with every thought, every
faculty, strained to make the most of the flying minutes which gave him
Meriel's company. He was unable to solace himself with the assurance
that she responded to the emotions which were aroused in himself by
her presence. She was purely natural, no spice of affectation spoiled
her glance or her smile. Indeed, at times she seemed to be unconscious
even of his existence, enthralled in the melody of the music,
responsive only to the rhythm of the throbbing strings. Guy could
hardly understand her rapture. Romeo et Juliette, even with world-famed
artists to sing the title rôles, had already ceased to awaken him to
passionate wonder. The naïveté of the girl's enjoyment surprised him,
and he wished that she might for once have forgotten the music for him.

Yet, if he had possessed the power to peer into the girl's heart, Guy
would have found that his own image was already stamped there; that it
was his presence which was the inspiration to enjoy; that, unknowingly,
imperceptibly, the tiny seed of love had been planted in her maiden
bosom, needing but the passage of the hours before it should spring up
into the perfect plant of a pure woman's first love. But, though Meriel
knew not of the implantation, she was conscious of the additional
thrill in her delight. The whole world was now become perfect to her.
She thought the sense of beatitude was the product of the sensuous
melody of the opera.

There was no discordant note anywhere. The evening promised to pass in
joy unalloyed. A fly dropped into the ointment. She looked up and met
the glance of Hildebrand Flurscheim. To her it was at first the mere
casual glance of a complete stranger from a near box. But there was
something compelling in it. When she glanced in his direction again
he was still gazing steadily at her. She drew herself back into the
shadow. But the exhilaration of spirit had passed. She felt compelled
to look again in the direction of the stranger. He was still watching.
When the act was ended, she turned almost petulantly to Guy.

"Can you tell me who that man is? The Jew staring at us
so persistently from the fifth box on the right?" she asked.

Guy glanced in the direction she indicated, but before he answered
Captain Marven spoke:

"The fifth?" he said. "That's Flurscheim, the chap who lost the
Greuze the other day. It's reported," he added meditatively, "that
he has sworn that he will devote the whole of the rest of his life
if necessary to tracking down the rascal who has robbed him of his
picture."

There was a smile on Guy's face as he answered: "He doesn't expect to
find it at Covent Garden, does he?"

Despite the smile, however, he was conscious of a vague sense of
uneasiness at the persistent scrutiny which Flurscheim was bestowing
upon the box. There are times when the fear of being found out bears
a marvellous similarity to the prickings of conscience, and certain
inward twitches which he felt made him supremely uncomfortable.
Hitherto he had always been able to justify his actions by means
of Lynton Hora's philosophy, but now he realised in a flash that
he would not longer be satisfied by justification in his own eyes.
Could he justify his deeds to the satisfaction of the pure-browed
girl by whose side he stood? Would she accept the doctrine that
since virtue consisted in a thirst for danger and a courage for the
forbidden, the highest virtue was to be found in the breaking of
laws? He knew instinctively that she would not, that in her eyes
he would appear no heroic figure engaged in single combat against
a host of enemies, but the despicable figure--a furtive, cringing,
creeping figure--the despicable figure of a thief.

He left the box with his thoughts in a turmoil. He scarcely observed
the particular warmth of the farewells with which both Mrs. Marven
and Captain Marven took leave of him. He hardly noticed that Meriel's
hand had lingered a moment in his grasp. He felt that he must be
assured that Flurscheim had not been watching him.



CHAPTER VIII

A SUCCESSFUL SPECULATION AND ITS RESULT


Lynton Hora felt that Fate had dealt generously with him when it
made Captain Marven the bearer of the despatch case which Guy had
so ingeniously rifled of its secrets. Guy's success had supplied
him with all the information necessary to bring off a magnificent
coup on the Stock Exchange. He had speculated heavily for the fall
in the securities of both countries. He knew that publication of
the information he had in his possession would make his operation
successful. He had not scrupled to publish that information, though its
disclosure before its discussion between the chancelleries of the two
nations concerned brought two great powers to the verge of war.

It found its way into the newspapers, and while the press of two
countries breathed defiance, Hora laughed in his sleeve, cynically
declaring that no farce is equal to the farce of civilisation, since
nations are as ready to fly at each other's throats as any street
curs. And while the newspapers snarled and patriots in beer houses and
at street corners sang national anthems, Hora watched the prices of
securities, and when the crisis reached its acutest stage, he bought
in his bear and found himself possessed of what to the majority of men
would have been a sufficient provision against the future.

But Guy's successful action had done more than lead to the swift
accumulation of a fortune. Hora had not for a moment anticipated the
long arm of coincidence would be stretched to such purpose as to make
the father the bearer of the despatches which the son had stolen. It
was the crowning stone in the carefully built arch which was to bear
the superstructure of his revenge.

Hora felt almost superstitiously inclined regarding the coincidence.
He did not learn of the identity of the messenger until Guy's return
from Lynn, and, as soon as it was made known to him, he saw how the
fact could be made to serve his purpose. Naturally he said nothing of
that ulterior purpose to either Guy or to Myra. He was merely full of
praises for his pupil. He declared himself to be so satisfied that
he expressed his intention of making the young man master of his own
actions for the future. "You have enabled me to provide for myself,
Guy," he said. "It is now my turn to provide for you, so that if at any
time you desire to retire from your profession you will be at liberty
to do so."

Guy had ridiculed the suggestion, but Hora had insisted. "Who knows
what may happen in the future," he said. "It will be well for you to
have money at your own disposal. You may quarrel with me. To-day sons
always quarrel with their fathers. Sometimes they rob them, and if
fathers were wise they would always see that their sons are spared the
necessity."

Guy laughed. He felt that he was not of the commonplace world of sons
who robbed their fathers, but he gave way to Hora's whim. He instructed
a broker on his own account, though the operation was not in his own
name. Hora had suggested that it would be just as well if for the
occasion Guy borrowed another surname. So the letter of introduction
he forwarded to Hora's broker introduced "my young friend Guy Marven,
upon whose information I am acting, and who, wishing to speculate on
his own account, I am prepared to guarantee up to £10,000." Accordingly
it was as Guy Marven that he signed in due course the transfer notes of
stock which came to hand, and it was with the name of Guy Marven that
he endorsed the cheque which he paid into his own banking account as
the result of the speculation.

He had wondered that Hora should have selected the name of Marven and
had even suggested the inadvisability of making use of it since Jones,
Brown, or Robinson would have been equally useful if the necessity
existed to use another than his own. To him it seemed that the use of
the name Marven might excite remark. "Exactly why I wish you to use
it," Hora had answered. "If anyone who was aware that Marven carried
those despatches should hear that a Marven had been speculating for
the fall, it would not be remarkable if they should arrive at the
conclusion that he had looked inside his case himself."

"That seems rather rough on Captain Marven," remarked Guy. It seemed a
mean deed, and Hora had not trained him to take delight in mean deeds.

"Isn't he my enemy, and therefore yours? You have no reason, I suppose,
for treating him with more consideration than all the rest of the
world?" demanded Hora.

Guy did not answer. He was tempted to reply with a direct
"no," but he had never yet lied to Hora. Yet he could not
bring himself to confide to the Commandatore the reason why
he would have extended consideration to Captain Marven.
He had no wish to hear the Commandatore's biting
cynicisms applied personally to Meriel. The idea seemed sacrilegious.
He was relieved to find that Hora made no comment on this silence. But
the Commandatore had not failed to observe it, and remembering at the
same time how Guy had nearly let slip the opportunity for securing
the Greuze in the seductive companionship of these same "pleasant
people," he realised that the time had come for him to discover what
the attraction was. Of course he guessed. The miniature set in the
snuff-box which Guy had expressed a desire to retain had not escaped
his notice.

"The inevitable feminine," he said sneeringly to himself. But he knew
that the inevitable feminine has always to be reckoned with where a
young man is concerned, and generally where an old man is concerned
also. It behooved him to know something of this new factor, which might
materially affect his plans. But Guy must have no suspicion that he
was under observation. Hora's mind jumped to an expedient whereby his
object would be secured without subjecting himself to inconvenience. He
determined to make the suggestion which had occurred to him forthwith.

"There's another matter which I have been giving thought to, Guy. Don't
you think that it is about time you took some chambers for yourself?"

Guy was more than startled by the suggestion thus sprung upon him. He
had always been left such perfect freedom that there had never been the
slightest temptation in the thought of possessing a domicile of his own.

"Why, Commandatore?" he asked. "I am perfectly comfortable at home
here."

"You will always be at home here, I hope," replied Hora,
"but at the same time there is much to be said in favour of the course
I am proposing. Now listen, Guy. I will say nothing of the extra
freedom which will be yours."

"I could not have more than I enjoy at present," remarked Guy.

Hora shrugged his shoulders. "Men are men," he said. "You may be having
visitors who might hardly like to come here. Eh?"

Guy smiled.

"I see it is possible," continued Hora, smiling in his turn. "Then
there are others whom I might not wish to meet. The men of your own
years with whom you mix, with whom you must mix if you are to keep your
position, will probably be often dropping in on you. I am getting of an
age, Guy, when I might find their presence, I will not say distasteful,
but just a little wearisome. At chambers of your own you will be much
freer in that respect."

"There are my clubs," objected Guy.

Hora waved the objection aside.

"Then there is the additional reason of our joint safety to be
considered," continued Hora meditatively. "It seems to me that if you
are located in a place of your own we shall be provided with another
strategic centre from which to carry on operations. You see it might be
important for the safety of both or either of us that we should not be
living under the same roof."

"Certainly, I see your point there," replied Guy, and he became
thoughtful.

"Think it over, Guy," said Hora, and he left the young man.

Guy thought it over, and was surprised when he did so that the idea
proved so attractive. It was not that he was ungrateful. He could not
believe that the daily companionship of Hora was becoming distasteful,
and yet there was certainly relief in the thought that he should be
apart from the man whom he called father. How greatly this thought was
due to the impression that Meriel Challys had produced upon him he did
not appreciate, but the knowledge that if he were settled in a home of
his own he might perhaps escape taking part in any plans for revenge
which Hora might be weaving about Captain Marven, was certainly a
powerful consideration.

When, therefore, Hora broached the subject again after dinner that
night, Guy was quite prepared, nay, even eager, to fall in with his
views. Hora was more than ever convinced that some unknown factor was
influencing his adopted son.

The only voice raised in protest was Myra's.

"You--you are going away? Why?" she asked.

There was a tremor in her voice which made Hora intervene hastily.

"It is my wish, Myra," he said. The woman shivered at the menace of his
tone. But it produced the result Hora desired. She quelled the emotion
that struggled for utterance, and listened in silence while Hora
reiterated the reasons which he had already given to Guy.

But though dumbly acquiescent she did not believe in Hora's statement
as to the motives which animated him, and when, after Guy had left
them, she was alone with Hora, she returned again to the subject.

"Why are you sending Guy away?" she asked. "Is it to
avert danger from yourself?" There was scorn in her
tone. Hora made no attempt to avert the threatened emotional storm.

"Have I ever feared danger?" he asked sneeringly.

"I've never known you to face it. I don't know anything about your
feelings," she replied.

Hora looked at her. She had never dared so to speak to him before, and
he knew that she must be greatly moved to so provoke his anger.

"You know nothing," he replied calmly. "A woman is utterly unable to
comprehend a masculine point of view."

"A woman cannot live in the same house with a man and fail to
know something of his character, and I know something of yours,
Commandatore."

He shrugged his shoulders in amused surprise.

"You find me an interesting study, Myra?" he drawled. He could not have
said anything more calculated to arouse Myra's tempestuous spirit.

"Interesting?" she exclaimed. "I don't know about that. You don't
interest me in the least. I--I--hate you."

"Dear me!" replied Hora equably. "I might have expected you to do so.
Perhaps I have, for there's undoubtedly wisdom in the suggestion that
one does not pluck figs from thistles, though the saying is somewhat
hackneyed."

"You need not throw my origin in my teeth, Commandatore," she replied.
"I am sufficiently conscious of it, and as for gratitude--well, I often
think I should have been far better off in the slums from which you
picked me. I should have been happy enough. The precious education you
have given me has only enabled me to realise my own impossibility. You
have given me knowledge, and with it the capacity for suffering."

"Like your mother Eve," responded Hora quietly, "you longed for the
apple and blame the serpent."

"Eve was no child, and I was a child when you gave me the apple," she
answered more quietly.

"That is true," replied Hora. "Possibly I did wrongly. I should have
left you to bloom in your own soil. You would have been overblown
by this time, Myra--some drunken ruffian's doxy--taking your weekly
beating without a whimper and seeing heaven in a quartern of gin."

"Better that--better that--than----" She paused.

"Well?" asked Hora. She muttered something sullenly, but in so low a
tone that the words did not reach his ears.

He continued, "You were asking me why I think it well that Guy should
have a home of his own. I have given you my reasons. I really should
have thought you were intelligent enough to realise their force."

"I don't believe in them," she flashed out. "Oh, I know you better than
that, Commandatore. I know your subtle methods. You have some other
end in view. What it is I know not, but I am sure it means danger to
Guy." She had been moving restlessly backwards and forwards, but now
she paused and faced Hora. "I tell you, Commandatore, that if anything
happens to Guy you shall not escape. I swear it."

Despite his apparent unconcern Hora was impressed by the
latent passion in her tone. Almost he regretted that he had
not left the beautiful flower to be choked by the weeds
from which he had plucked it. But he remembered that
he had one means of controlling Myra which would necessarily prove
effective. He rose from the chair where he had been sitting. "If
anything happens to Guy, I don't suppose I shall care much what happens
to myself," he replied gravely. "Is he not my son?"

"Your son?" replied Myra. "I doubt it, Commandatore. No father would
ever have brought up a son as you have brought up Guy. Besides, there
is nothing of you in him. I know you both. There's not a feature alike,
and the difference between your thoughts and actions and his is just as
strongly marked."

"You are talking nonsense, Myra," he said harshly, far more perturbed
than he cared to confess at the discovery by which the woman's
intuition had arrived at the truth.

"You may call it nonsense," she continued wildly, "but there's no blood
of yours in Guy's veins----"

Hora checked her. He laid his hand on her shoulder, and though she made
an effort to throw off his grip he held her tightly and thrust her down
into an easy chair.

"You little fool," he said, "you don't know what you are talking about.
Like all women in love you let your imagination run away with you."

She still struggled ineffectually to escape from his grasp while he
continued. "Suppose I had other motives than those I have given to you
and Guy for desiring that he should live apart from us for a little
while, have I ever by any chance done anything which could bring
danger upon him? Did it never occur to you that one of my motives had
connection with yourself?"

She ceased to struggle. Her hands
dropped limply by her side.

"I might have known, I might have known," she cried; "and yet,
Commandatore, you promised me that I should have my chance."

Hora saw that he had won the battle. He loosed his grip of Myra's arm
and returned to his chair.

The girl rose and following him dropped on her knees before him. The
tears were in her eyes and her bosom rose and fell stormily. "You
promised me I should have my chance, Commandatore. Don't send Guy away.
I cannot bear it. Indeed--indeed, I cannot bear it." Sobs choked her
utterance.

Hora allowed her to weep awhile. Then he laid his hand gently on her
bowed head.

"Poor little woman," he said, "if you could only see an inch beyond
your own nose, you would realise that I am giving you your chance now."

She looked up incredulously, but with a dawning hope flushing through
her tears. "I don't understand how----" she began.

"You have been too near Guy," he remarked. "He has never realised your
value. At a little distance he will be more clear-sighted. A woman is
like any other work of art. Her beauties are invisible unless seen in
proper perspective. While you live in the same house he will never
realise that you may be more than a sister."

"Then you think----" she asked.

"I am sure of it," replied Hora decisively. "It is to give you
the chance you desire that I have persuaded Guy to live apart
from us awhile, for that and in order to discover something
about a rival whom I suspect you may have."



CHAPTER IX

CONCERNING A GREAT MAN'S VEXATION


When the carriage containing the Great Man rolled up to the door on the
south side of Downing Street the constable stationed there stiffened
himself preparatory to saluting. But his salute passed unnoticed. The
door swung open, but the commissionaire got not so much as a glance.

"There's trouble brewing in China," said the worthy hall porter to his
circle of cronies that same evening in the private bar of the "Lord
Palmerston," "you mark my words if there isn't."

"More likely to be with Germany. That's the right place to look for
trouble," asserted one of the listeners.

"Of course, you would know better than me," replied the worthy janitor.
"You read the papers every day, so you can't be wrong." There was
unutterable scorn in his tone as he referred to the press.

"And what's wrong with the papers?" enquired the interlocutor in an
aggrieved voice. "I suppose they know as much about things as you do,
any day."

The commissionaire pursed his lips, blew his nose, and finished his
beer before he found words to convey his answer.

"The newspapers! The newspapers are common liars!" he
answered, "and ought to be hanged as such.
No--don't you go for to speak up for 'em--George Jenkins--we know all
about the papers in our department."

Jenkins did not subside immediately.

"I presume Sir Gadsby takes you into 'is confidence--not to say asks
your advice occasional?" he asked sarcastically.

"He might do worse than ask the advice of a man who's fought in h'all
four quarters of the globe and 'as the right to wear six medals and
twelve bars," interrupted another listener propitiatingly.

"So he might," replied the commissionaire smiling genially, "but that's
neither here nor there. If you want to know why I say it's China, I
don't mind telling you." He glanced round to see that no outsiders were
within earshot and dropped his voice into a confidential whisper.

"Four secretaries have I known since I went to our place, and I studies
'em until I comes to read 'em like books, and Sir Gadsby Dimbleby is
one of the easiest volumes I've ever had to study. I know 'is German
face an' 'is Russian face as well as I know my own. This morning when
he come in I could read China in 'is heye as plain as if it were in the
biggest print. You mark my words there's trouble brewin' in China."

The oracle had spoken, and as is often the case with oracles which have
not been primed with facts, the utterance was as wide of the mark as it
could well be.

Sir Gadsby Dimbleby's brain had not been occupied in the least
degree with Chinese affairs as he passed the portals of the Foreign
Office. He was troubling about something which had happened much
nearer home, a subject which had been pigeonholed in one of the
compartments of his brain until the crisis in the relations
with Germany caused by the premature disclosure of the unfortunate
incident in the South Seas should have passed. That storm had been
safely weathered, and H. M. Secretary of State for Foreign Affairs
bethought himself of the promise he had made to himself to discover
how the information had leaked out. To him it seemed uncommonly like
treachery on the part of someone, and being by birth, education, and
natural instinct a thorough English gentleman, the idea even of having
to suspect anyone in the great department of which he was the head of
treachery was odious to him. So the Great Man passed, heedless of the
salutes of officials, to the uttermost sanctum where the Permanent
Secretary sat with his fingers on the strings which directed British
policy all over the world, peacefully enjoying a matutinal cigar while
glancing over the précis of a verbose despatch, prepared by his own
secretary, from the Governor of a wind-swept rock in the South Atlantic
concerning the deadly damage likely to be done to British interests by
ceasing to imprison a garrison in such an out-of-the-way spot.

The Permanent Secretary looked up as the Great Man entered and
wondered. He was at a loss to understand the reason for the knitted
brow. The political horizon was clear and nothing could happen without
his knowledge. He guessed that the reason was domestic. He knew that
Lady Gadsby had a will of her own, and that even Great Men are human
enough to be annoyed by feminine displeasure.

But Sir Gadsby soon undeceived him. He fidgetted about
uncomfortably for a minute or two, irritably asking
questions about minor matters which had recently
engaged his attention before he plunged into the subject which filled
his thoughts.

"Look here, Markham," he said, "that German business in the South
Pacific is still worrying me."

The Permanent Secretary looked at him in surprise. "There's no need to
worry, Dimbleby," he answered, "that storm's blown over all right."

"That's not the point," snapped Sir Gadsby. "What I want to know is how
that information leaked out in the newspapers. Have you any suspicions?"

The Great Man frowned at the Permanent Secretary, and the Permanent
Secretary frowned at the Great Man. The Permanent Secretary was silent
so long that the Great Man continued, "I hate to think that any of our
people can have been so lost to all sense of decency and honour, yet
what on earth can I think? You have told me yourself that our despatch
must have been tapped somehow."

"I have puzzled over the matter as much as yourself," said the
Permanent Secretary slowly, "and am as much at a loss as yourself to
account for the information leaking out. It seems to me that there are
only two persons whom it is possible to suspect."

"And those?" queried the Great Man eagerly.

"Are our own two selves," was the answer.

Despite his irritation the Great Man laughed at the whimsicality of the
idea, but he became grave again rapidly.

"If that's the case, we must bring a different order of
intelligence to bear upon the problem. What do you say to
asking the assistance of Scotland Yard, Markham?

"I've not much belief in Scotland Yard," replied the Permanent
Secretary, "but still there can be no harm in our giving them the
opportunity of investigating the affair. They may discover a clue which
will assist us in coming to some conclusion."

"Then send over a messenger at once, Markham," said the Great Man
energetically. "I shall never feel safe if the contents of despatches
are to leak out in this manner. Ask the Commissioner to send over his
most intelligent officer--no, ask them to send Kenly. I know he's
got common sense--to make a delicate investigation. We will see him
together." Then he stalked off to his own room and worked off his
irritation in preparing sarcastic answers to inconvenient questions
in Parliament, of which notice had been given him by members of the
Opposition Party. Consequently he had recovered his accustomed urbanity
when the Permanent Secretary, accompanied by Detective Inspector Kenly,
was ushered into his presence. He greeted the newcomer heartily.

"Glad the Commissioner could spare you, Kenly. There's nothing like
having a man to undertake confidential work whom one knows from
experience one can trust. I suppose Sir Everard Markham has told you
what we want you to do?"

The Permanent Secretary interrupted with a hasty negation.

"Oh, well, the matter will not take long to explain," continued the
Great Man. "Correct me if I am wrong, Markham."

The Permanent Secretary nodded and handed a cigar case to the chief.

"Not before lunch," said the Great Man. He turned to the
detective. "On the face of it the matter should prove a simple one,
Kenly, but just at present it is beyond our combined intelligence to
fathom it. Late on the fifteenth--a Tuesday, wasn't it, Markham?--a
cypher cablegram containing important information came into this
office. The despatch was de-coded----"

"By myself," interrupted the Permanent Secretary.

"Placed in a despatch case which was sealed in the usual way and
forwarded by King's Messenger to me," continued Sir Gadsby. "I received
the case, broke the seals myself, and retained the despatch in my own
possession."

"Yes," said the detective, as the Great Man paused.

"The despatch related to the recent trouble in the South Pacific, the
German affair," remarked the Permanent Secretary, "and next morning
there was wild excitement on the Stock Exchange, and later in the day
the newspapers published full details of the trouble, much to our
embarrassment."

"H--m," said the detective, "I suppose you want me to find out who gave
the show away?"

"Your perspicacity is wonderful, Kenly," remarked the Great Man drily
and the Permanent Secretary smiled. "At present, Markham, I know,
suspects me of 'giving the show away,' as you put it, and if I didn't
know Markham I should be compelled to suspect him. We are really the
only two possible suspects."

"H--m," said the detective a second time before remarking
deprecatingly, "The despatch passed through the hands of a third
person. I think you mentioned a King's Messenger?"

"I sealed the despatches with my own hands," remarked the
Permanent Secretary. "And the seals were intact when I took the case
from Captain Marven's hands," added the Great Man.

The detective hazarded another suggestion.

"Is it quite impossible that the information might not have reached the
Stock Exchange and the newspapers from an external source?"

"So far as we can ascertain, quite impossible," replied the Permanent
Secretary. "We have ascertained that no cable was received in
London which could in any way have related to the affair before the
publication of the news."

"It seems to me," said the Great Man briskly, "that even if we cannot
get direct evidence as to the source through which the information
leaked out, we should at least be able to come to some sort of
conclusion if we knew the names of the parties who must have benefited
by the Stock Exchange operations."

"I see," said the detective. "Well, Sir Gadsby, I'll do my best to find
that out for you."

"I know you will, Kenly," said the Great Man. "But not a word to
anyone; and, while I think of it, I'll write a note to the Commissioner
and ask him to allow you to report directly to Markham here, and to
devote your whole time and attention to this business."

"Very good, Sir Gadsby," said the detective, and the interview ended.

When alone with the Permanent Secretary, Inspector Kenly asked every
question which occurred to his active brain, but he elucidated nothing
more than the very simple facts with which he had already been made
acquainted, and when he left the Foreign Office it was with no
very hopeful feeling of being able to lay his hand on the culprit.
It is true that there had occurred to him the glimmering of a
possibility as to who might have been responsible for the disclosure.
The despatches had been in the possession of a third party, in the
possession of Captain Marven, the King's Messenger, for seven or eight
hours; and Inspector Kenly had no particular reason for believing that
official locks and seals were more inviolable than any other locks and
seals if submitted to the gentle manipulation of an expert. But he had
met Captain Marven in the course of his official life, and what he had
seen of him led him to credit the reputation for perfect probity and
honour which the King's Messenger held in the eyes of the world.

"I should have liked an easier job," grumbled Inspector Kenly to
himself. "Another failure to find out anything coming on top of my
failure to get the slightest clue to the mystery of the Flurscheim
affair will make the Chief think that I am getting past my work.
However, it's no use worrying because I'm not possessed of the gift
of divination. What is, was to be," with which philosophic reflection
he stepped aboard a 'bus bound Citywards, and, while engaged there
in his investigations, the Great Man, having finished preparing his
list of answers for the day's sitting of Parliament, carried off
the Permanent Secretary to lunch with him. They enjoyed their meal
none the less because they had unloaded the cause of their vexation
upon the broad shoulders of Detective Inspector Kenly.



CHAPTER X

A NEW VIEW OF THE FLURSCHEIM ROBBERY


Time did not touch Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim's sore with a healing
finger. A month after he had been robbed of his treasures the wound
was still open, though by that time he had been wise enough to conceal
it with a decent bandage from the curious eyes of the public. But
his friends and his enemies knew that it was there and condoled or
rejoiced, according to their several temperaments. Perhaps there were
more who rejoiced than of those who pitied him, for Flurscheim was not
a popular man. Even his friends were compelled to admit that he was
something of a curmudgeon, and were not quite so sorry as they would
have been had the loss fallen upon anyone else.

After the robbery he became more curmudgeonish than ever, and his
perpetual growlings at everything and everybody made him so undesirable
a companion that even his poor relations began to find that his company
was an infliction that was barely endurable, even when sweetened by
the prospect of figuring in his will. Yet as people shrank from him
he seemed anxious for society. Partly because he realised that if he
were cloistered with his own thoughts his broodings would terminate
in madness, and partly because he wished to make clear to the world
that his loss was a mere triviality to a man of his wealth, he sought
to entertain in a manner which was entirely foreign to his earlier
habit and his real desire. He had a wide acquaintance, and there were
many of the butterflies of fashion and rank who were attracted to his
dinner-table once by curiosity. If, after the experience, they decided
not to go a second time, it was too early for the connoisseur to have
discovered the fact. It was in pursuance of this campaign of detraction
that he had found himself at the opera when his stares had proved so
discomposing to Meriel Challys and--afterwards--to Guy. The latter,
had he known, need have taken no alarm. Flurscheim's scrutiny was not
directed towards him. Meriel's face alone had engaged his attention.
He had first caught sight of her as she had bent forward to drink in
the music, and he recognised that her features were familiar to him,
but where and when he had met her he could not for the moment remember.
It was not until after he had left the opera house that his memory
supplied the answer he sought. Then he remembered that one of the
stolen miniatures would have served as a portrait of the girl.

Immediately he began to weave a new theory concerning the burglary. He
had woven many theories before; avarice, spite, disappointed rivalry
had all supplied motives for them, but never had he considered the
possibility of a love motive for the robbery. Supposing that some
unfavoured suitor had seen the miniature, and, coveting it, had broken
in to steal it. No! Such a theory was too wild for even his own belief.
Yet the likeness was so extraordinary that he looked forward to meeting
the owner of the strangely attractive face again.

Fortune favoured him, for within a week he found himself at a garden
party at which Meriel was also a guest. He sought and obtained an
introduction from the hostess, and was quite oblivious to the chilly
character of his reception.

"I particularly wanted to meet you, Miss Challys. Indeed, I may say
that since I saw you at the opera a week ago your face has really
haunted me," said Flurscheim.

Meriel's eyebrows arched. She meditated flight.

"I'm afraid you must have thought me an awful bounder, staring at you
the other night," he continued, "but your face was so familiar to me,
and yet I could not recall where I had met you. It wasn't until after
the opera was over that I remembered that one of my stolen miniatures
was a most striking portrait of you; I hope that you will realise that
my rudeness was unintentional."

"I certainly did not think so at the time," replied Meriel.

"It was quite a relief when I placed my memory," said the connoisseur.
"D'you know that I'm one of those men that are made supremely
uncomfortable by a lapse of memory of that sort. I begin to think my
brain's failing if it doesn't respond at once to any call I make upon
it, and after my recent worry I really began to be anxious."

"Did the burglary worry you so much as all that?" replied Meriel.
Usually sympathetic to any story of trouble, she felt it difficult
to express any sympathy with the loss the wealthy connoisseur had
sustained.

"Worry me?" asked Flurscheim in an astonished tone.
"Worry me?" he repeated. "Worry isn't the name for
what I've gone through. I can see you don't understand
what a collector's treasures mean to him. My
dear young lady"--in his excitement an accent became audible which made
of the words "ma tear young lady,"--"my pictures are what I've lived
for. If I lose them my life is as empty--as empty"--he looked round for
an appropriate simile and found one handy--"as most of these people's
pockets."

Meriel smiled at the racial revelation. Flurscheim thought she smiled
at the simile itself. "Fortunately it was only one of my pictures that
was taken," he continued, "but"--he could not resist the wail--"it was
the best of the lot. I would rather have lost any two of the others."

Meriel began to be interested in the man. He was manifestly honest in
his confession. She even managed to infuse a little sympathy into her
enquiry as to whether the police had obtained no clue to the thief. By
so asking she struck another chord in the keyboard of the Flurscheim
emotions.

"The police! Fools! Dolts! Idiots!" he exclaimed. "Of what use are
the police but to strut about and direct the traffic? When it comes
to catching thieves they are just about as useful as the pigeons in
the parks. Some of them call themselves detectives," he continued
with virulent scorn. "There's one of them called Kenly, an inspector
with a reputation of being one of the smartest men at Scotland Yard!
Got it, I should think, the same way as an owl gets a reputation for
wisdom. Cocks his ears, opens his eyes wide, and keeps his mouth shut.
For nearly six weeks he has been doing nothing else but investigate
my robbery. And what has he found out? Nothing, absolutely nothing.
Detectives, bah!" He pulled himself up with an effort. "I've
promised myself I wouldn't talk about the matter to anyone, Miss
Challys. I can't do so without losing my temper, and it will give you a
very bad opinion of me if I have to apologise to you twice in one day."

"You seem to lose it pretty easily, Mr. Flurscheim," she answered.

"Can't help it, Miss Challys. So I'll apologise straight away for doing
so and for staring at you the other night, for I know you were annoyed.
It never struck me that you might be annoyed, you know. Most girls
to-day take it as a compliment when a man looks 'em over."

Meriel stiffened and, looking away, met Guy's eyes. She had known
that he expected to be present, and at the recognition her whole face
brightened. Guy had already recognised Flurscheim, and though the fact
that he was apparently engaged in earnest conversation with Meriel gave
him a twinge of apprehension, he did not hesitate to come forward.

Flurscheim looked upon the young man disapprovingly as Meriel put her
hand in his. He saw that his existence was momentarily obliterated from
the girl's mind. But he did not move from her side, and when, still
forgetful, she strolled away with Guy across the lawn without even
turning her head in his direction, he muttered a curse in which Guy was
included amongst things in general, but from which Meriel herself was
just as certainly excluded.

No sooner were they out of hearing than Guy gave expression to the
curiosity which the sight of Flurscheim in conversation with Meriel had
excited in him.

"However did that bounder Flurscheim manage to corner you, Miss
Challys?" he asked.

Meriel glanced round. "Oh! I had quite forgotten him,"
she said laughing, "although I was wondering how I should manage to
escape him when I saw you."

"After staring at you the other night in so impertinent a manner I
wonder he had the cheek to face you," continued Guy irritably.

"Oh! he explained all that," replied Meriel. "He sought me out
to-day in order to apologise." She told how the connoisseur had been
puzzled to account for his familiarity with her face and his ultimate
recognition of her as the autotype of one of his missing miniatures.

Guy smiled at the explanation. He realised with an exceptional
degree of pleasure that the miniature was now in his own possession.
He had long ago carefully removed the picture from the lid of the
snuff-box in which it had been set and had reset it himself in a
simple gold frame with a circlet of brilliants. It was his by right of
possession, and he determined that it should remain his. Incidentally
the information Meriel had given him that she had been the object of
Flurscheim's scrutiny came as a relief. It was proof that he himself
was in no way suspected. At the same time it seemed to Guy an added
impertinence on the part of the connoisseur that he should have sought
to make Meriel's acquaintance. It gave him pleasure to think that he
had despoiled the Jew of his treasures. He would have liked to have
confided his thoughts to the girl at his side. He was almost on the
point of doing so when his common sense bade him pause. She would not
understand. She was not tutored in the doctrine of the rights of the
individual to possess everything upon which he may lay his hand. But
he could not resist the opportunity which seemed to offer to open
her eyes to some of his own beliefs. If he presented them
delicately they might not offend. Crudely expressed, he knew that she
would not listen.

"Flurscheim is hardly the sort of person who deserves to possess
beautiful things," he hazarded.

"There seems something incongruous in the idea," she said smiling her
reply. "But there can be no doubt but that he has a very real love for
them."

"Can't believe it," said Guy emphatically. "The capacity to acquire
beautiful things and the capacity to see their beauties rarely go
together."

"I should think that your argument would rather apply to the burglar
who stole Mr. Flurscheim's valuables than to Mr. Flurscheim," replied
Meriel merrily.

"Not necessarily," answered Guy. "It might be that the person in whose
possession they are now is far more capable of appreciating the Greuze
or of the miniature which he declares is so like yourself, than he is,
and if such should happen to be the case hasn't the present possessor
as much right as Flurscheim to the enjoyment of them?"

He spoke lightly and Meriel replied in the same tone.

"Isn't that an argument which might apply to anything of the nature of
personal possessions?" she asked.

"Certainly," he responded quickly. "Is the man or woman, who wants
a thing, to go without it when somebody else has more of the same
article than he knows what to do with? Look at that fat old woman over
there"--the disrespectful allusion referred to the maternal relative
of the latest American addition by marriage to the list of British
peeresses--"she's so loaded up with jewels that she absolutely clanks
as she walks. She has enough on her to satisfy the aspirations of a
hundred ordinary women. Why should she have all those pretty stones and
trinkets and lots of other women go without?"

"She certainly is wearing far too much jewellery for a garden party,"
replied Meriel, her eyes twinkling.

"Yet if any other woman were to relieve her of even the smallest of her
extraneous adornments the mere possession of which would probably give
her far more pleasure than it does to the present possessor, there's
not a man or woman here who would not cry 'to gaol with the thief,'"
said Guy.

Despite his intention, Guy had warmed to the argument, and he awoke a
corresponding earnestness in his companion.

"I don't think I should," she said quietly. "I should pity her too
much."

"But why?" he asked. "She would merely have shown herself to have the
courage of her desires."

Meriel shook her head. "I always pity people who cannot control their
desires, particularly when those desires are for things that don't
belong to them."

"But," urged Guy, "everyone is born with the right to enjoy. That
fat old woman has long ago ceased to find enjoyment in many of her
trinkets. Why pity anyone who would at one stroke relieve her of her
burden and at the same time provide themselves with a new pleasure?"

Meriel knitted her brows. "I'm no good at an ethical argument, Mr.
Hora," she said. "And I am quite sure you only want to get me to agree
with you so that you may laugh at me afterwards."

"No," he answered. "I've no _arrière pensée_ of the sort
you imagine. I know you would think it wrong, the majority think it
wrong for anyone to help themselves to other people's things. I want to
know why."

Meriel looked at him archly. "Suppose I were to slip behind that
comfortable old lady and snip off that little watch all studded with
diamonds from her chatelaine, what would you think of me?"

"I wish to Heaven you would," he answered.

Meriel laughed. "I should never have thought that you could be so
strongly provoked by mere ostentation."

"I was not thinking of the old woman," he answered. "My admiration
would be entirely attributable to your pluck in defying the
conventions."

"But afterwards?" she objected. "You could never have the slightest
respect for me."

"On the contrary----" he began.

She interrupted him. "No," she said. "You would no more respect me than
I could you, if, for instance, you had stolen poor Mr. Flurscheim's
picture."

He was taken aback by the apposite allusion. For a second, and for a
second only, he imagined that there was intention in her selection of
the simile. But a glance into the smiling eyes which met his so frankly
disabused his mind of the idea. Clearly, the girl never thought that
he could possibly have engaged in such an adventure. She had not the
slightest idea that he was guilty--no, that was the wrong word, the
coward's word, no guilt attached to his actions--that he was capable of
such a feat. She saw that he was disturbed and continued gaily.

"Why, even the supposition of such a thing is
repugnant to you, and yet you ask why?"

"Even suppose that the idea is repugnant," he replied, "I still ask why
it is so. Reason could justify the action."

"For reason say sophistry," she answered quickly. "You know that
the repugnance of the thought is inbred. It's inherited. We can't
help thinking like that because the knowledge of right and wrong is
intuitive."

"A woman's answer," he answered lightly.

"A man's still more," she said with earnestness. "One might possibly
forgive a woman's theft. We are the weaker creatures and the more
easily swayed by our desires. But the man should be strong enough to
resist. No man worthy the name could stoop to dishonour himself in so
petty a manner, nor could he have aught but contempt for the woman who
so gave way to her covetousness. No, Mr. Hora. You could never persuade
me that you could have an atom of respect for me if I were to so forget
my principles as to filch any one of the over-jewelled dowager's
trinkets? Now, would you?"

He sought refuge from the direct answer in a side issue. "But if your
principles were such that you honestly believed that the good lady had
no more right than yourself to her jewels and that only the fear of
punishment restrained you from taking possession of them?"

Meriel laughed gaily. "I cannot even conceive such a possibility," she
said. "It seems to me you are preaching anarchy, and I'm not the least
little bit of an anarchist."

The approach of a third person interrupted Guy's
reply. Looking away from Meriel he saw Captain Marven
standing beside him. The Captain had heard his niece's
concluding words and he corroborated them.

"I can safely swear that a more tyrannical dictator of law and order
than Meriel never stepped over a man's threshold. You must accuse her
of something else, Hora."

Guy laughed and the subject dropped. But the conversation had made
an impression upon him. It had destroyed, though at the time he did
not recognise the fact, the delight he had felt in being something
apart from other men, the exhilaration of being in conflict with
the world. The obvious scorn which the girl felt for the thief,
her absolute belief that the idea of theft was as repugnant to
him as it was to herself, were deadly blows to the philosophy
which Lynton Hora fondly imagined he had planted so deeply as to
be ineradicable. Guy felt that his belief was crumbling. He knew
that if he were to be true to the man he knew as father he should
forswear the bewitching companionship of the girl who exercised
so unsettling an influence upon him, nevertheless when a little
later Captain Marven asked him to visit them at their country
home when the season was over, he accepted eagerly.



CHAPTER XI

GUY FINDS A NEW HOME


In the days that followed the conversation between Guy and Meriel,
the young man's disquiet strengthened, though he hid his perturbation
successfully enough from the eyes of his daily companions. He met the
Marvens frequently, for he could not resist the fascination Meriel
exercised upon him. He could see that he was a welcome visitor at the
Marvens' house, and yet every time he accepted their hospitality he
felt a twinge of regret that Captain Marven should have been a victim
of his predatory philosophy, even though the victim had not been
personally injured thereby. Instinctively he loathed himself for the
treacherous part he appeared to be playing, even though he argued that
he had but played a man's part in avenging his father's wrongs.

He would have felt more satisfied if he could have been made acquainted
with the nature of those wrongs. But when he had ventured a question
on the subject Lynton Hora's brow had wrinkled into a heavy frown,
and he had harshly bidden Guy to refer no more to the subject. Nor
could he gain the least enlightenment from Meriel, though he had
discreetly questioned her regarding her uncle's early life. No
suspicion as to his real parentage ever crossed his mind. Meriel had
merely referred to the great grief of her relatives' lives in terms
which had produced in Guy's mind the idea that their only
child had died in infancy. "Poor auntie and uncle lost their only
child when he was three years old," she had said, "and even now no one
ever dares mention his name in their presence, they feel the loss so
acutely. His name was Guy, like yours, and I think that is partly why
they seem to like you so much."

From his acquaintance with Captain Marven, Guy could not conceive
that the kindly hearted man had ever done anyone a deliberate injury.
He began to question the possibility of Hora being possessed of
some delusion on the subject and longed the more to be acquainted
with the facts in order that he might be in a position to put the
misunderstanding right. Since that was hopeless, however, he was
profoundly thankful that Hora had insisted upon his taking a residence
apart. He had found chambers which suited him in the "Albany," and
there he was free to brood over his own mental problems without the
possibility of having to meet Lynton Hora's enquiring glance. He no
longer felt satisfied with his tutor's philosophy. He was almost afraid
to lay bare his new-born doubts to the scorn which the Commandatore
would pour upon his heart-searchings. He imagined that the Commandatore
had no idea that any conflict was taking place in his mind. He
flattered himself that he had long since obtained complete mastery
over the expression of his thoughts, that his face was no dial of his
emotions but a mask for their concealment. But he did less than justice
to his master's perceptive powers. He was not conscious that it needed
an effort to remain in the company of the Commandatore, but Lynton Hora
perceived it, and realising that Guy was concealing something from
him determined to become acquainted with the details of the matter
concealed. He had not lost confidence in Guy. He did not imagine that
the truth of principles he had so carefully instilled was likely to be
questioned. But Captain Marven was so associated with the black days,
marked indelibly in his life's calendar, that he could not feel easy
in his mind now that he had once more crossed his path. Besides, for
the consummation of the revenge he was planning, it was imperative
that no nook or corner of Guy's life should be veiled from his sight.
That was the real reason why he had suggested Guy's finding an abode
for himself. He desired to be made acquainted with Guy's movements,
the houses he visited and the companions he affected when away from
home. It would have been difficult to set such a watch on Guy, if he
had remained at the flat in Westminster, without subjecting himself to
inconvenience; but installed in chambers of his own, it would be easy
to obtain information.

Hora's first intention had been to keep watch himself on Guy's
movements, but consideration decided him to employ some tool for the
purpose. His thoughts had lingered for a moment on Myra, but that
suggestion also was speedily put aside; she was too passionately
interested in Guy to prove a trustworthy spy upon his actions. Hora
knew where to look for a reliable tool, for, secretive though he was,
averse to allowing any outsider to co-operate with him in the execution
of any of his enterprises, yet he had kept in touch with certain of
the companions who had worked beside him, groaned under the same
harsh discipline, in the days of his expiation. None of them knew him
by name. But his face was known to them, and welcomed, for he never
appeared amongst them without bringing largesse for their debauches,
and, more welcome still, suggestions of places where booty awaited the
skilful craftsman with bold heart, and wise words of advice as to the
means by which it might be acquired. These denizens of the lower world
guessed that their unknown benefactor was of themselves, though moving
on a higher plane. The suggestions he made were invariably audacious,
but when put into practice they almost as invariably proved successful,
so that the unknown became known amongst them as the Master.

Guy had not been settled in his new abode for more than three days when
Hora set out in search of someone who would undertake the business.
He took all his usual precautions in order to avoid identification,
though he relied more upon the assumption of a new character than
upon any physical disguise. He entered a train which carried him
away to London's most beautiful possession, the Royal Gardens of
Kew. He entered the gates a bright, alert personality. He had an
appreciative eye for the beauties of the trees and the flowers, but
he did not linger amongst them, seeking a retired spot amongst the
trees in the wild portion of the demesne. When half an hour later he
retraced his steps nothing but the curious limp in his gait would have
hinted at his identity. The overcoat which he had carried on his arm
was now worn on his back. Its threadbare seams and worn cuffs were
an eloquent testimony of poverty. The sprucely folded umbrella had
become baggy, and instead of carrying it on his arm he leaned heavily
upon it. A pair of steel spectacles were fixed upon his nose. His
hat had been exchanged for another much the worse for wear.
His collar had been replaced by one of clerical cut. A Bible, much
worn, was under his arm. He looked like a mild, inoffensive clergyman
who had fallen upon evil days, or a curate who had never fallen upon
good ones, and anyone who spared him a single glance would have been
ready to stake a good round sum that the contents of the bag he carried
consisted mainly of tracts. Returning to the railway station he asked
in the mildest of voices for a ticket to Latimer Road, and bungled over
counting the change while the people waiting behind him impatiently
snorted at his clumsiness.

"I'm sure I beg your pardon for detaining you," he said when the
coppers were safely put away in a shabby old purse. He was always
authentic in his impersonations.

No one took the slightest heed of him when he reached the station to
which he had booked, and, alighting, set his face in the direction
of Notting Dale. He walked steadily on, turning now to the left
now to the right again. Each street he entered seemed to worsen in
some indefinable manner. The main road into which he had passed
from the station had been merely one of London's characterless
thoroughfares, with rows of struggling shops, each flaunting the
banner of cheapness in the face of passers-by. A sign of a poor
neighbourhood this, and off the main road the signs were more
pronounced. The open doors, the women sitting at open windows, the
babies on the stairs and the pavements, the voice of the coal hawker,
were all unmistakable signs. Presently the dress of the women became
more blowsy, the children dirtier, men were to be seen lolling from
the windows and gathered in groups outside the doors of
the public houses; when policemen were to be seen at all, they were in
couples. Hora's face wore an air of positive benevolence. A boy of five
or six years ran beside him with outstretched hand.

"Spare us a copper, guvnor?" he asked.

Hora paused. "I have no coppers to spare, my child," he remarked.

"I ain't had no breakfus," said the child.

Hora's eyes twinkled.

"I'm afraid you are not speaking the truth, my boy," he remarked
blandly. "Still"--he opened his bag carefully and extracted therefrom a
packet of sticky sweets and a bundle of tracts. "I don't expect you get
many sweeties. Hold out your hand."

The youngster did as he was bidden. Hora counted four sugary lumps into
the eager palm. "Never tell a lie, my boy," he said solemnly.

The child seemed unimpressed. "I say, is that all, guvnor?" he asked as
Hora replaced the paper of sweets in his bag.

The incident had not passed unobserved. From a doorway close at hand a
bullet-headed man, whose cranial outline was the more strongly marked
because of the closely cropped hair, was looking on with a grin on his
countenance, while across the road a couple of policemen were also
watching. The bullet-headed person spoke suddenly.

"You run away and stop worriting the good gen'l'man," he said.

The boy looked up, caught sight of the policemen, and whirling on
his heels disappeared like a rabbit into its burrow.

"The very kids in this street learn to tell the tale afore they can
walk," remarked the round-head pleasantly.

"I'm afraid it's a very wicked street," said Hora with a sigh. "The
devil has many disciples in Fancy Lane."

"Guess you're right there, guvnor," replied the man. "There's two on
'em comin' across the road to talk to you now." There was a shadow of a
wink in his eye.

"Let me hope you will have nothing to do with them," said Hora
earnestly, "any more than I should myself. You must know where
companionship of that sort leads."

"I know that right enough," said the man passing his hand over his
closely cropped hair. "I don't have no more truck with that sort than I
can help."

Hora reopened his bag and took from it a tract.

"You may find some helpful words here," he said. "This little story is
called 'The Downward Path.' Take it and it may prove a blessing to you."

He turned away, and, for the first time, appeared to become aware of
the presence of the two policemen.

"I am afraid that I did not rightly apprehend that good man's meaning,"
he said aloud as if talking to himself.

One of the policemen looked down upon the bent figure.

"Beg pardon, sir," he said, "I just wanted to make sure it was you,
because this street, as you know, isn't too safe for strangers."

"Thank you, my friend," replied Hora. "But you know that I am as safe
here as at my own home." The policemen passed on.

"There won't come no harm to him," said the elder to his companion.
"They knows he's a harmless old crank, an' they chy-ikes him a bit for
comin' to convert 'em with a packet of tracts for the men and a packet
of sweets for the kids, but he's safe enough, for he never has anything
about him to make it worth while anyone knocking him on the head."

"He comes pretty reg'lar, I suppose then?" asked the second constable.
"I've not seen him before."

"Three or four times a year, may be. There's plenty knows him in the
street."

They passed out of sight and Hora went on his way, stopping now and
then to speak to a man or a woman or to bestow a sweet on some urchin
in the gutter. So, progressing slowly, he reached an archway which
had once formed an entrance to a builder's yard. He passed beneath it
and crossed the open space to a shed which stood at the far end. The
ground was littered with rubbish of all sorts, dirty wisps of straw,
dirty pieces of newspaper, rotting cabbage stalks and decomposing
remains of fish. Reaching the shed he gave no knock but pushed the
door open and entered. Outside, the July sun was shining brightly and
within the darkness was so dense that he stood still until his eyes
grew accustomed to it. The shed was provided with one small window, but
three of its four panes were glazed with brown paper and the remaining
pane of glass was so begrimed that only a feeble light forced entrance
through it.

While he stood in the doorway striving to penetrate the gloom a human
voice, though it was so far unlike the ordinary human voice that it
might have belonged to any creature but one made in God's image, began
to mutter and gurgle in the darkest corner.

"Ma Norton?" asked Hora.

The answer came like a wheeze of a dropsical spider.

"Get out of this. I don't want no ant'em cacklers round my place."

By this time Hora's vision had grown accustomed to the semi-darkness.
He took off his hat and laid it on the table. He saw that but for
one old woman seated in a corner there was no one else present.
"Your eyesight's failing, Ma," he remarked composedly. The old woman
struggled to her feet. "Blimy! If it ain't the Master hisself," she
wheezed. "What's brought you down here again so soon?"

"What else should but the desire to see you a reformed character,
the desire to read the Bible to you, pray with you with the object
of ending your days in the workhouse like a decent Christian woman.
Ha--ha--ha!" He laughed at his own ribaldry.

"He! He! He!" the old woman cackled in response. Her pallid, pendulous,
flabby cheeks flapped as she shook with merriment. Her enormous frame,
held loosely together about the waist and shoulders with untidy tapes,
threatened to collapse like a half-cooled jelly shaken too soon from
the mould. The tears started from her eyes and ran down her cheeks.
She gasped and choked until reaching for a bottle standing handily on
a shelf she poured something from it into a tumbler standing by and
tossed off the draught.

"That's better," she remarked. "You shouldn't make me laugh, Master.
Laughing shakes me so that I'm afraid it'll be the death of me some
day."

"No fear," answered Hora. "You will finish yourself off with the gin
bottle first."

"Lord! What a man it is for making game of an old
woman's little weakness," she replied composedly. "But what's brought
you here to-day out of your time? Nothin's happened to my gal, has
there?"

"Getting anxious to have her home again?" remarked Hora sardonically.
"I'm not sure that she would appreciate the home you could give her."

He looked round him and smiled at the thought of Myra transported
into such surroundings. The bare walls of the shed with the plaster
broken and crumbling away; the filthy floor with a grimy sack thrown
before the fenderless fireplace to do service as rug; the two stained
deal tables littered with old articles of crockery, remnants of food,
articles of attire, all mixed up together; the broken chairs; the
grubby bed and bedding in the corner, would make a strange setting for
the exotic beauty who at that very moment would probably be stepping
from her perfumed bath to don a dainty dressing gown before submitting
to the ministrations of her maid.

The old woman watched his glance distrustfully. "You ain't thinking of
turning her out, Master?" she whined. "I know very well she's well off
where she is, an' you know this ain't no place for the likes of her."

"I might bring her here to see you one day. I'm sure she would be glad
to see her mother," he remarked.

The woman rose again from the chair. She spoke with ill-concealed
agitation.

"Don't you go for to do it, Master. Don't you do it. I'm quite
satisfied so long as I knows she's all right. There ain't no call for
her to set eyes on the likes of me. Why, it might happen that she would
sick at the sight." Her voice died away and she repeated dully, "Don't
you go for to do it!"

"I don't think she would be exactly pleased," remarked Hora. "But make
you mind easy, Ma. It's nothing to do with Myra that I want to see
you about. You hear a lot of things in this part of the world, and I
wondered whether by any chance you have heard lately of Corny Jessel. I
have a job for him."

The old woman reseated herself and helped herself thoughtfully to
another allowance of gin. "When did I last hear tell of him?" she
murmured. "Not so long ago, for certain. The shadder-man, you mean,
ain't it, Master? Corny Jessel, the shadder-man?"

"Yes," said Hora. "The shadow-man."

"My memory ain't what it was," said the old woman disconsolately, "but
I'm sure I heard about him only the other day."

Hora lit a cigarette and smoked calmly while the woman racked her
memory. At last he was rewarded for his patience.

"It was Bully Hagan telled me he'd seen him only the other day."

"The round-headed man who's just come out of prison?" asked Hora.

"Lives at 27 in the Street, first floor front," said the woman.

"I met him on my way here," said Hora. "I'll go and find him." He rose
to go.

"You haven't told me how my gal's lookin'," said the woman.

Hora laughed, but he good naturedly complied with the request, and for
five minutes poured into the greedy ears of the woman a description
of the dresses and the jewels her daughter wore at the theatres and
dinners and dances to which she had recently been. Then he took his
departure, leaving behind him a couple of gold pieces in the old
woman's palm. In the street he resumed his missionary demeanour and
passing along from house to house found Bully Hagan at the same spot
where he had parted from him, and in exchange for another piece of gold
was soon put in possession of the address he sought. He wrote it down
on a piece of paper.

Cornelius Jessel, Woodbine Cottage, Melpomene Road, Wimbledon.

And, resuming his progress, came at last to the more respectable
streets and finally to the railway station again.



CHAPTER XII

INSPECTOR KENLY'S LODGER


One day at the beginning of July Detective Inspector Kenly's face as
he left the railway station and stepped out briskly homewards wore a
particularly injured air. It was not entirely owing to the sultry state
of the atmosphere, though that may have had something to do with his
frame of mind. He considered himself to be a greatly aggrieved man. In
the first place his investigations into the Flurscheim burglary had
been an abject and total failure. He had spent day and night following
up illusory clues without the slightest result. On top of this he had
been entrusted with the investigation of the stolen despatch affair,
and after three days' laborious enquiry found himself no nearer any
accurate result than he had been when he commenced, save that certain
names on the list of members of the Stock Exchange had been ticked off
as unable to afford any information. These failures he might have borne
with equanimity had they been his sole grievance. But he had another,
and being a purely personal, private, domestic grievance, it rankled
far more than any of the others.

Detective Inspector Kenly was a married man, and when Mrs. Detective
Inspector determined to have her own way, Mr. Detective Inspector,
however clever he was at circumventing the wiliest of criminals,
invariably succumbed to the wiles of the smiling lady who ruled
over his household. Happily any difference between them
was rare, but there was one subject upon which they never could agree.
The Inspector liked to keep his home to himself. He thought that his
good lady had quite enough to do to look after himself and the two
little Kenlys. But that was not Mrs. Kenly's opinion at all. She
thought that no home was complete without a lodger. To her such a thing
as a spare bedroom in her house was an abomination. She looked upon it
as so much capital lying idle, instead of being put out at interest
with some eligible young man or young woman. When he had taken Woodbine
Cottage, Melpomene Road, Wimbledon, Kenly had thought that he should
have circumvented Mrs. Kenly's little idiosyncrasy. But there were two
attics in the cottage which had not entered into his calculations. It
did not occur to him that they could be utilised for any other purpose
than as box-rooms. But Mrs. Kenly thought differently. In her eyes they
would make quite adequate, if small, bedrooms, so before he had been
settled in the house for a month, all the Inspector's arrangements were
recast, the youthful Kenlys were relegated to the attics, while the
largest bedroom on the first floor was furnished as a bed sitting-room
and a card placed in the window announced to all and sundry that
"furnished apartments" were to be secured at Woodbine Cottage.

The card did not remain there very long. Woodbine Cottage looked
so spick and span; the bright windows, the white curtains, the
spotless doorstep, and shining brass knocker were such attractive
testimonials to the quality of the accommodation to be found within,
that the eligible lodger was speedily secured. For six years
Inspector Kenly entertained a single lady of mature years and a
small income. He did not repine overmuch, for she had few friends, gave
little trouble, and was more or less of a companion to Mrs. Kenly when
his business, as it often did, took him away from home.

But, when she left, Inspector Kenly made another effort to persuade
his wife to do without "the lodger." In vain he argued that his income
was ample for the wants of the household. Mrs. Kenly would not listen.
Once again the card appeared in the window, and in due course Cornelius
Jessel, passing by, saw it there, and, being at the time in want of
a quiet retreat in a really respectable neighbourhood, thought that
the apartments, if not too expensive, would suit him. He saw the bed
sitting-room. He liked its appearance so well that he paid a week's
rent there and then in advance, and thus, when Inspector Kenly returned
home one evening, he found that he was once more possessed of a lodger.

Possibly, if Cornelius Jessel had been acquainted with the position
and occupation of the head of the household into which he had entered,
he might not have been so ready to take possession of the comfortable
bed sitting-room. But Inspector Kenly did not think it desirable to
blazon abroad his connection with Scotland Yard. He had particularly
insisted upon any lodger who entered his house remaining unacquainted
with his profession. So Cornelius Jessel had not the slightest idea
that he was living under the roof of one of the men whom he had long
ago learned to look upon as an enemy. Indeed, he had real reasons to
fear the emissaries of law and order. Not that he was by any means a
person of importance in the criminal world. He was merely one of those
backboneless creatures who have the will but lack the courage to do
any daring deed which would make them famous in the annals of crime;
one of those poor shrinking, cringing creatures who are content to
play the part of jackal to more venturesome spirits, a petty thief
sometimes, an astute writer of begging letters at others, a deviser
of petty frauds for robbing poor people of a few stamps on every
convenient occasion.

[Illustration: As she bent over him a sudden mad impulse to clasp her
in his arms seized him.]

When he had timidly asked to be shown the vacant apartments in Woodbine
Cottage, Mrs. Kenly had decided at once that he would prove amenable
to any rules and regulations she might like to impose upon him. He
agreed with such a deprecating air to every suggestion she made as
to the points which seemed desirable in a well-conducted lodger that
her heart quite warmed to him. He thought sixpence a scuttle for
coals "most reasonable." He agreed that the room was certainly worth
more than the seven and sixpence weekly paid in advance, which Mrs.
Kenly demanded for rent and attendance. He exhibited the liveliest
satisfaction when Mrs. Kenly informed him that beyond a shilling a week
for "gas" she charged "no extras," and came to a most satisfactory
arrangement regarding the meals he proposed to take at home, and the
price he was to pay for them. Mrs. Kenly thought in her own mind that
a bachelor was much more profitable than a maiden of mature years,
and congratulated herself on her luck. When she further learned from
Cornelius Jessel that he was engaged in "literary pursuits," and would
not be disturbed by many callers, though his work might sometimes keep
him in the house all day, she thought she was indeed in luck's way, and
was fully prepared to defend her action when called upon.

She found it necessary to do so from the first. Inspector Kenly
objected most strenuously to the presence of a male lodger in the
house. He objected still more when he had made the acquaintance of
his new tenant. He disliked Jessel's appearance. The pale hair, pale
complexion, pale watery eyes roused his antipathy. He disliked Jessel's
manner still more. The lodger did not walk as an ordinary man, he
glided from place to place. He glided down the stairs and out of the
front door, and he glided in again and up the stairs so that no one
ever knew whether he was in or out of the house. His apologetic manner,
his dislike of going abroad by day, his abstemiousness, his apparent
lack of acquaintances, the very decorum of his habits were to Inspector
Kenly reasons for suspicion. The Inspector was no mean judge of men,
and he dubbed Jessel thief at sight. "Some day we shall find him and
the spoons missing," he said to his wife. She laughed at the idea.

"Well, if that should happen, I shall depend upon you to recover them
for me," she replied.

She did not believe that there was any harm in the man. But the
Inspector was so certain in his own mind that he spent some hours
searching the records at Scotland Yard, after having secured some of
his tenant's finger prints by a trick. The search was quite useless.
There was no record against him. Hitherto he had always managed to
evade the law.

It was the fact that he had been unable to secure the proof he desired
that constituted Inspector Kenly's third and greatest grievance.
Everything seemed to be going wrong with him. He had been so certain
that he would be able to provide good and sufficient reasons to his
wife for getting rid of the detested lodger that, when he found that
he was unable to do so, he began to doubt whether his instincts were
playing him false.

Thus brooding he turned into Melpomene Road. Several yards before
him was an elderly man wearing a clerical collar with an overcoat
threadbare at the seams, a little black bag in his hand, and a Bible
under his arm, and slightly dragging one foot after him as he walked.

"Non-conformist parson," commented the Inspector to himself. The
stranger was looking each side of him as he passed up the street, but,
on reaching Woodbine Cottage he paused, lifted the latch of the gate
and, entering, made his way to the front door.

"A visitor for the lodger," commented the Inspector, and he passed
by his own door to the end of the road. When he returned, the
non-conformist parson had disappeared. The Inspector let himself
quietly into the house with his latchkey. An opportunity was afforded
him of learning something concerning the lodger which he determined
not to neglect. He said nothing to Mrs. Kenly as to his intention, for
his suspicion that the tenant of the first floor front was, to use
his own expressive phrase, "on the crook," might not prove capable of
demonstration. He merely said that he had business that evening, and
could only remain in the house a few minutes. So Mrs. Kenly popped
the tea in the teapot forthwith, dished up the haddock, which had
been simmering over the pan on the kitchen fire, and directed all her
attention to supplying her husband's requirements. While thus engaged
the lodger's bell rang, but she paid no heed to the summons until she
had seen that the Inspector's needs were all provided for.

"I expect Mr. Jessel wants a cup of tea for his visitor," she remarked,
when the bell tinkled a second time.

"So he has begun to have callers at last, has he?" remarked the
Inspector.

"It's the first time since he come to live with us, a month ago last
Tuesday," replied Mrs. Kenly, "and a nice-spoken old clergyman, too.
I always thought as he was a most respectable young man, and now I'm
sure of it." She bustled off to answer the bell, in the absence of the
youthful maid of all work, who had been sent out with the two young
Kenlys to picnic on the Common.

Inspector Kenly said nothing. When Mrs. Kenly returned and prepared
a tray with two cups on it, he chatted about indifferent things. He
finished his tea leisurely. "I'll just have a rinse before I go out
again," he remarked to his wife. He closed the door of the little
sitting-room behind him, and mounted the stairs. When occasion
required, Inspector Kenly, in spite of his six feet of muscular
manhood, could be as light-footed as any cat, and not a stair creaked
as he mounted them to his own bedroom, the door of which was opposite
that of the room in which the lodger was entertaining his guest. In
his own doorway he paused and listened. He could hear a murmur of
voices, that was all. Stay! His trained ear caught the sound of a name
twice repeated, "Guy Hora." It meant nothing to him, but he noted it
instinctively. The voices dropped to a murmur again, and the Inspector
returned downstairs, and, after lighting his pipe and telling his wife
that he did not expect to be very late home, he slipped out of the back
door and made his way leisurely to the end of the street.

His meal had put him in a much more contented frame of
mind, and, as he puffed away at his pipe, he smiled at the thought
that he should be engaged in keeping observation on his own house.
It reminded him of his early days in the detective force, and he
remembered how often he had waited hours without anything rewarding his
patience. This time his patience was not severely tried. He had not
finished his first pipeful of tobacco when his lodger's visitor made
his appearance, and passing along the street took a turning which led
to the nearest railway station.

Inspector Kenly walked briskly in the same direction, but by another
route. It was slightly longer than the one Lynton Hora had taken, but
Kenly was there first. He was on the platform before Hora, and was in
the guard's brake almost as soon as the train came into the platform.
He observed that his lodger's visitor carefully scanned the carriages
as they passed him and entered an empty first-class compartment. "Hard
up parsons don't usually travel first-class," commented Inspector Kenly
to himself.

He kept his eyes fixed on the door of that compartment all the
way to the terminus, but it remained unopened until Waterloo was
reached. There, watching more keenly than ever, he chuckled at his
own acumen when his observation was rewarded by the sight of a very
differently attired person to the shabbily clad old clergyman, who had
entered the compartment, stepping from the train. The clerical hat
and collar and the spectacles had disappeared. The shabby overcoat
carried on Hora's arm revealed only a new silk lining which was not
out of keeping with the smartly cut lounge suit Hora was wearing
beneath. His stoop abandoned, he seemed three or four inches
taller, but he still carried his bag, and Kenly could not have mistaken
the limp.

The detective walked briskly along the platform to the exit of the
station, giving one glance at Hora's face as he passed him. Hora was
signalling a cab and paid no attention. At the exit the detective
paused. The cab which contained the man he was following drove through
the gate, and he heard the address which the cabman shouted to the
clerk in the cab registry office. He gained the street, and, hailing an
empty cab passing at the moment, gave the driver an address two doors
distant from that which had reached his ears. A block in the traffic at
a street corner enabled him to catch up with the cab he pursued. Nor
did he again lose sight of it until Hora, alighting, paid the man, and
entered his own residence.

The detective looked at his watch. Seven o'clock! There was plenty
of time before him. He also dismissed his cabman, and strolled
along to the building which Hora had entered. Unless his memory
was at fault he guessed that he would have very little difficulty
in obtaining all the information he desired. He knew the block of
mansions, and he knew that a year or two previously an old comrade
of his was employed there in the capacity of hall porter. His memory
had not deceived him. As he reached the door his old comrade opened
it to allow a lady to pass. Recognition was mutual. Inspector
Kenly entered. When he left he was acquainted with all that the
servants in Westminster Mansions knew of Lynton Hora's household,
but the information he had gleaned afforded him no sort of a hint
as to the nature of the connection which existed between him and
Cornelius Jessel, the detective's literary lodger.



CHAPTER XIII

POISONED WORDS


A hundred times a day Myra told herself that she would forget Guy, that
she would tear every tender memory of him from her heart, and a hundred
times a day her heart cried out passionately that forgetfulness were
impossible, since every time she saw him her hunger for his love grew
fiercer. There came a day when she realised that it was impossible
to persuade herself that she might ever forget, and, when she thus
surrendered herself to the bitter-sweet reflection of the folly of
bestowing a love which was unreturned, she realised also that certainly
and surely Guy was drifting further away from her.

If he had remained under the same roof, she would have been content
for the relationship of brother and sister to endure, but, when
she could no longer watch over his outgoings and incomings, she
became possessed of a devouring desire to know how and where he
spent his time. With a woman's intuition she guessed that he could
not remain fancy free. He was not that type of man. She knew that
to him the feminine complement would inevitably be sought and
found. She had thought that he might have found that complement
in her. When Hora had told her that she had been too near Guy,
she had trusted his knowledge of the world, but after Guy had
been living away from them for a month, and he had shown
no alteration in his demeanour, she told herself that Hora had merely
lied to her to prevent her protesting against a plan which was to
place Guy out of her reach. She thought she saw that plan maturing as
the weeks passed and Guy's visits became fewer and fewer. Hora did
not apparently mind when he only came in for a brief half-hour in the
morning during a whole week, and made that visit merely to announce
that he was going out of town on the following day, and was uncertain
when he would return.

Myra remembered that six months previously he would have acted very
differently. Then any plan formulating in his mind would have been
discussed between all of them, then she would have known where he was
going, and when he might be expected to return.

She did Lynton Hora an injustice. He was in reality as much perturbed
as herself at the alteration in Guy's demeanour. But he could await the
explanation with more equanimity, since he had taken steps to discover
the reason. He did not for a moment suppose that Guy's opinions were
undergoing any change. Even, as Myra, he suspected a feminine reason
for Guy's reserve on the subject of his movements. He did not attempt
to force a confidence from the young man; he was far too astute. He had
no belief in confidences that were not volunteered.

Guy was glad that he had not been asked for an explanation as to
his movements. He felt ashamed that he could have accepted an
invitation to the house of his supposed father's enemy. Yet he
could not have resisted the opportunity which would be afforded
him of spending whole days in the sweet companionship of Meriel
Challys. So, after his acceptation of the invitation given
him he had stayed away from Westminster Mansions. He had not thought
of Myra at all. They had been boy and girl together, confidantes,
playmates, brother and sister. The idea of any other relationship had
never for a moment crossed his mind, and when he bade her a careless
good-bye and mechanically kissed her cheek he had not the slightest
suspicion that her heart was in a tumult, that at the faintest
encouragement she would have thrown herself into his arms and offered
her lips.

She gave no indication of the emotion which swayed her then. But all
day she brooded over the coldness of the farewell alone in her room.
Not with tears, the time for that relief was not yet come.

Hora had observed, but said nothing. But when she did not make her
appearance at the dinner-table he went to her room. The door was
locked. He began to be afraid. But she answered to his knocking that
she had a headache and could not eat. He reasoned with her, and
commanded that she should join him at the table. She was on the point
of refusing, but habit was strong. She obeyed his peremptory request,
though sullenly. Hora took no notice of her mood, while the meal was
being served, but when it was over and Myra rose to leave he rose too
and followed her. She went direct towards her own room. He checked her.

"I must speak to you to-night, Myra," he said. "I have something
important to say to you."

She passed through the door which Hora held open for her without a
word and threw herself into a chair. She anticipated some reproach,
but she was far too miserable to care for reproaches.

Hora was silent awhile after he had entered and seated himself opposite
her. Then he spoke sharply. "What have you been saying or doing to Guy
to drive him away from his home?"

The suddenness, the preposterous nature, of the charge aroused Myra as
nothing else could have done. Her lethargy vanished. The colour flashed
to her cheeks and the light to her eyes, though surprise tied her
tongue so that Hora had time to repeat the query.

"What have I done to Guy?" she answered. "What do you mean? Do you
think that I--that I--would do anything to send him away?"

"I can conceive of no other reason why he should have so deserted his
home of late," answered Hora coldly. He was deliberately provoking a
storm, and it burst upon him.

"I am not quite the fool you suppose me to be, Commandatore," she cried
hotly. "You cannot impose upon me with the shallow pretence that you
think I am responsible for Guy's absence. I am not blind. I can see
plainly enough that your intention has been to get Guy away and there
can only be one motive for your wishing to do so. You think he can do
far better for himself than to mate with a girl you picked up from the
gutter."

"Suppose I have thought so; what then?" asked Hora. "What cause have
you for complaint?"

"None," she answered, her voice full of bitterness. "Save that you
have allowed me to live in a fool's paradise, that you have encouraged
me to believe that one day the impossible might happen, that you
have encouraged me to believe that there was no one you would so
welcome as daughter as myself. I don't know why you should
have instilled such a belief in my mind, Commandatore, unless you
have hated me all the time. You must have done so, and now you should
be glad. You have made me suffer--well, now you can gloat over the
thought."

"Made you suffer, have I?" answered Hora scornfully. "You don't know
what suffering is. The vapourings of a love-sick girl. Bah! I have no
patience with such sentimental bleatings."

Myra rose from her chair, pale now with anger, "And now you insult me,"
she cried.

He would have interrupted her, but she overpowered his words with a
torrent of her own. "Oh, you have the right to insult me as you please;
I don't question it. Did you not buy me, as you have told me often
enough, body and soul for a piece of gold and a bottle of gin. The
master cannot insult the slave, you will say. I suppose I ought to
smile at your reproaches, but when you accuse me of having driven Guy
away--it is too much, Commandatore. I cannot bear that accusation, at
least."

She dropped limply into the chair from which she had risen. Her face
fell forward into her hands, and her whole body was shaken with a storm
of sobs.

Hora was silent. He had provoked the storm. He waited for its
subsidence before he broached the subject he had in his mind. Presently
tears came to Myra's relief, the crystal drops broke through her
fingers. She lay back in the chair exhausted by the cyclone of passion.

"I have something yet to say, Myra," remarked Hora quietly. "I believe
you when you say that you have done nothing to drive Guy away, but
that belief makes it necessary to look for another explanation. Guy
is of the age when there is only one possible explanation. He is blind
to your beauty, Myra; have you any idea as to any other woman who is
likely to have attracted him?"

There was a subtle meaning in Hora's voice which arrested Myra's
wandering attention. She looked up. Tears had reddened her eyes, a
hardness came into her face. She was almost ugly. She crushed her
handkerchief into a ball.

"What do you mean, Commandatore?" she asked. Then, as she met
Hora's eyes, she bent forward to him, "You know something, you know
something." She forced the words from between clenched teeth.

Hora made no answer, and she continued, "You need not trouble about
breaking it gently, Commandatore. Who is it?"

The Commandatore was unmoved by her emotion.

"I am asking you, Myra. As yet I have only a suspicion. I was wondering
whether you could not give me confirmation."

"Don't play with me any longer, Commandatore," she pleaded. "I am not a
child."

He seemed to be moved by the appeal, for he answered with animation,
"Indeed, Myra, you do me an injustice. I know nothing certainly, I only
suspect; and I am blaming you, Myra, you--for allowing Guy to be taken
from us."

She gazed at him stupidly, while she repeated his words, "You are
blaming me?"

"Yes," he answered, "I am blaming you. You are young,
you are beautiful. Day by day you have been in Guy's
company, and yet you have allowed him to be stolen
away from us. If you have not driven him away, at least you have made
no effort to keep him."

Myra was silent. Hora was speaking vehemently and, though she had
learned to doubt his every word, yet it was difficult to doubt his
sincerity now. The man continued:

"You have told me you love. I doubt if you can know the meaning of
the word. Love does not sit with hands folded idly while the beloved
is stolen away. Love fights for existence against all rivals. It is
insistent. It will not be denied. Beauty is its weapon. The knowledge
of the primitive instinct of a man to a maid is a sufficient education
in strategy. Are you such a fool that you did not see that it was in
your power to have kept Guy at your will?"

Myra was forced to protest. "To thrust myself on Guy. To be
repulsed--the shame of it, Commandatore," she answered weakly.

"Bah!" replied Hora. "A man will fight for a woman, and take no shame
in his repulse. Why not a woman for a man? Are you of such ordinary
stuff, such common fustian, that you will tamely stand by while some
milk-and-water chit takes your natural mate from you? You had better go
back to the gutter, if so."

There was scorn in his words, scorn in the tone of his voice, and if
Hora intended to rouse the woman's spirit the words did not fail of
their purpose. Though she winced under the sting of his speech, her
eyes flashed fire again.

"You do me less than justice," she said. "Have I not always been
obedient? You have never bade me please myself. Always it has been,
some day if you are dutiful, Myra, you shall have the chance. I have
waited and waited, and now you have nothing but scorn."

Hora rose, and, passing behind the girl, bent over her chair.

"It may not be too late yet," he said. "You remember when I said to you
that the day might come when I should bid you take Guy's heart from
him, toss it away, trample on it, break it, or store it away with your
trinkets--do with it as you please? That day has come, Myra." His voice
whispered, almost hissed, the latter words in her ear.

"It is too late," she cried in reply.

"It is not too late," insisted Hora passionately. "Too late is the
excuse of cowardice. Guy will come back. It will be your duty to keep
him, to make him forget all else but yourself."

"But he cares nothing for me," she cried.

"That is your fault," he answered readily. "Heaven! You a woman and
hold yourself so cheaply. Look in the glass and compare what you see
there with the women you meet day by day." His voice dropped to a
whisper again. "Guy's eyes have been closed to your beauty. Open them.
He has yet to learn that a man's will dies when a woman's arms are
around him, and her lips are pressed against his. Teach him the lesson,
Myra, for I tell you that if such a passion as yours does not awaken
a response in his heart, he is much less than man. You want to know
how to make victory certain? Take lesson of Delilah, but do not let
too many opportunities pass. Remember that once you win him he is won
forever. I am on your side."

Myra listened, fascinated by Hora's subtle suggestions. He
ceased speaking and stole softly out of the room. She did not hear him
depart. Her mind was in a tumult. There was joy in the thought that
the Commandatore had at last not merely given her permission to win
Guy, but had urged her to the conquest. There was dread lest another,
the unknown rival, should already have won him. There was doubt in her
mind that she might fail, but that was tempered with a knowledge of
her own beauty. She hastened to her own room and asked the mirror for
information. Yes, beauty of face and form were both hers. Gladly would
she have laid her beauties at Guy's feet, but to use them to entrap
him--a flood of crimson overwhelmed her at the thought. And yet, rather
than another should take him from her, there was no shame to which she
would not cheerfully submit. Even if Guy should scorn her, she would
still have tasted the fierce joy of possession.

Cunningly had Lynton Hora made use of his knowledge of the
girl's complex nature. He had heaped fuel upon the flames of her
desire, he had artfully suggested that it was within her power to
light an answering flame in Guy's heart. He had taunted her with
cowardice in submitting without effort to a rival's success; he
had even recalled her humble origin to her mind as if he would
make it clear that she could not stoop to conquer. And the poison
which he had dropped in her ear entered into her veins until
it filled her whole being. But Guy did not return.



CHAPTER XIV

THE SHADOW-MAN


The whole of Cornelius Jessel's cringing heart and slinking soul was
put into the work which the Master had given him to do. He loved to
peer and pry into other people's business, even when no hope of any
immediate advantage to himself promised to reward his curiosity. But
when such work produced solid, golden results, no one in the world
could have devoted himself with more keenness to it than "Ma" Norton's
"Shadder Man." And the Master was no niggard. When he paid his visit
to Inspector Kenly's house in Melpomene Road, he had left behind him
twenty pieces of gold. "If I am satisfied with you, I shall continue
to pay you the same amount at the end of every four weeks," he had
said; "but remember that I shall do so only on condition that you act
strictly on my instructions."

Cornelius had protested a determination to devote himself absolutely
to fulfilling his employer's commands, while his eyes glistened at the
sight of the gold.

The Master did not trust entirely to the spy's avarice. "You had
better obey," he sneered, "for if you do not you will probably find
that one or two little incidents in your career, with which you have
not hitherto been identified, will become known in quarters where you
are not likely to be viewed with any special favour."

Cornelius Jessel had shivered at the tone his patron adopted, and had
renewed his protestations.

"I warn you first," the Master had continued coldly, "so that you may
be free to refuse or accept as you please. Once you accept, however,
remember that you will have to reckon with me, and I never forget to
repay the man who plays me false."

Jessel had accepted when he had learned that he was required to do
nothing which could by any chance bring him into conflict with the law,
that he was merely required to watch over and report upon the doings
of a certain Guy Hora. One reservation the Master had been compelled
to make, even though he realised that it might have the very opposite
effect he desired. He warned Cornelius to make no inquiries concerning
the young man's own family. "I know all about his father and sister,"
he remarked, giving his own address, "and, besides wasting your time,
any interference in that direction might upset my plans. What I want
you to do is to find out who are his friends and all about them, what
houses he visits and for what purpose. You know the way to set about it
by getting hold of the servants and so on."

Yes, Cornelius knew, and it tickled his vanity to think that the Master
had realised his talents in that direction.

Then another thought had seemed to strike Hora. "The young man," he
said, "has a manservant to look after him, who was dismissed from his
last berth for drunkenness. He pretends to be retrieving his character.
Well--if by any possibility he were to lose it again--I think I could
manage to get you his berth. I need hardly point out that in such a
position you might be in a position to earn the salary I propose to
pay you with great case to yourself."

Cornelius understood. He suspected from the Master's words that Guy was
a well-feathered pigeon upon whom the eyes of a hawk were fixed. When
the time came for plucking, he realised that one or two stray feathers
might easily be blown in the servant's way. He said nothing of his
thoughts in this direction, but, when the Master had left him, he was
as keen to find out all he could concerning Guy as his patron could
have wished. He would have started that same night only he had been
forbidden to do so.

Accordingly, it was not until the next day that Guy became possessed of
two shadows. He was not aware of the fact. He did not know that outside
the door of his chambers in the Albany a shadow lurked to mingle with
his own, and to follow him wherever he went. He did not know that it
accompanied him to his tailor's, and peered through the window while he
was fitted with the latest thing in waistcoats. He did not know that
it rode behind his cab to the club, and waited there until he emerged,
and then, picking its companion up, went hand in hand with it to the
theatre, where it was lost in the shadows of the pit, while he sat in
the stalls. He could not know, therefore, that this second shadow was
utterly unlike his own, in that it possessed an avid curiosity to learn
what he was doing within the doors which alone proved a barrier to it.
He did not know that when it had followed him three days in one week to
Captain Marven's town-house that the door no longer proved impassable
to it. He could not have known that when he was in the drawing-room
Cornelius Jessel was in the kitchen eagerly listening to details of
the gossip of the servants' hall which had already decided that "that
nice young gentleman, Mr. Guy Hora," seemed to have "attracted Miss
Meriel's fancy for sure," and that both the "master and the mistress
were just doing their level best to bring the match about."

Day by day Lynton Hora had received the report of his spy, and thus
he had learned what he had to fear. He had early taken an opportunity
for enlisting Myra's aid to recall the wanderer when the opportunity
should offer. But, though he had learned something, he was by no means
satisfied with the information.

He wanted a more intimate knowledge of the progress of events, and,
meeting the shadow-man by appointment, he harped again upon the
desirability of the shadow being within the very same roof as the
person to which it was attached.

The shadow from that moment transferred itself from master to man. It
followed him on his errands. It gained his acquaintance. It proved
itself a merry, affable shadow, indeed, with a pleasant fund of genial
anecdote, a carelessness about the tightness of its purse-strings, so
that James Under, whose one thought for the fortnight he had already
been in Guy's service had been to escape the pursuing, remorseless
alcohol fiend, welcomed the acquaintance as an ally. In his off-hours,
and they were many, the temptation to Under to turn in to the nearest
saloon bar had been almost irresistible; until he met with Jessel.
After the meeting Cornelius proved an innocuous alternative. He did
not appear anxious to cement the acquaintance with a drink. Under was
glad when he met his new friend. They spent a whole Sunday
afternoon in the park together, and nothing stronger than tea passed
their lips. They went to a music-hall in company, and ginger beer was
the innocuous refreshment which Jessel proposed. He was far too astute
to hasten his plans until the fitting time. That arrived soon enough
for his purpose.

One evening, when Jessel had arranged to meet his friend for a visit to
the theatre, Under met him with the information that Guy required him
to return to his chambers about ten. The evening was wet.

"It's no use thinking of the theatre," remarked Jessel to his
companion, sheltering him with his umbrella, as they walked down
Piccadilly towards the Circus. "We shall have to postpone our visit
until another evening. But"--he stopped suddenly--"I tell you what,
Under. Why shouldn't we be swells for once in our lives? I'm in
funds to-night, and I just fancy myself dining at one of the tip-top
restaurants."

"I don't think----" began Under, and paused. "My togs," he added
expressively.

"The guvnor's got more than one suit, hasn't he?" asked Cornelius. "You
will have plenty of time to change on your return."

The valet was tickled with the idea. "It would be a bit of all right,"
he murmured gleefully. "I've often thought I'd like to be one of
themselves just to know what it felt like to be waited on instead of
having to wait."

"Come along, then," said Cornelius impulsively. He wheeled his
companion round, and hurried him back to Guy's chambers. But outside
the door Under paused. "What about you?" he asked.

Cornelius laughed.

"I intended to 'ave dinner by myself somewhere if you couldn't come to
the theatre," he remarked, "an' I prepared accordin'."

Under had bestowed small attention on his companion's attire, but now
he looked more closely at him. Jessel unbuttoned his overcoat, and the
valet observed that he wore correct evening dress. His last scruples
vanished.

"Come inside and wait. I shall be ready in a jiffy," he said.

Cornelius entered Guy's abode, and condescended to smoke one of Guy's
cigarettes, while his companion rigged himself out in one of his
master's evening suits. Under was not long in making the change. He
strutted into the room with a most consequential air when he made his
reappearance. One of Guy's silk hats was on his head, one of Guy's
white waistcoats had been made to meet round his waist, displaying one
of Guy's newest shirts. He carried one of Guy's light overcoats over
his arm, and selecting one of Guy's cigarettes he lit it and professed
himself to be "fit for anything."

The two sallied forth again. Reaching the street, Cornelius hailed a
passing hansom cab, giving the driver the address of a fashionable
restaurant close at hand.

"Why not walk?" exclaimed Under.

"Real toffs never walk," replied Jessel, and Under was dumb.

The next quarter of an hour passed as time passes in dreamland. The
bowing commissionaire at the door, the unobtrusive waiters, the gaily
lighted room, with nearly every table occupied with parties of diners,
the flowers, the beautiful women, seemed unsubstantial. He had seen
them all before, it is true, it was no unaccustomed sight, but the
circumstances were so different. Now all this was prepared for him--for
his own especial delectation.

He awoke suddenly. An ice-pail was wheeled beside the table, and the
wine waiter, lifting a gold-foiled bottle from the glittering crystals,
drew the cork. He could not refuse, though for one moment the ghost of
a resolution flitted across his mental vision. "Only this once," he
murmured to himself. For thirty years, ever since he had been fifteen
years of age, he had served. He was not going to allow his one evening
of enjoyment of being served to be spoiled by any resolutions made
by the servitor. His eyes lingered on the champagne lovingly. The
delicate froth melted and the rising bubbles as they burst set free the
imprisoned breath of the vine. He raised the glass and sipped. Then he
nodded his head sagely.

"There's no fault to be found with your taste in champagne," he
remarked to Jessel.

"I thought that we might as well do the thing properly while we were
about it," was the reply. In one of his permutations Cornelius had
occupied the post of butler in a wine merchant's family, and he had
learned something of the niceties of brands and vintages, though in
this respect he could not claim to the connoisseurship of Under, whose
thirty years in the best families had left him little to learn on the
subject.

Under emptied his glass, the attentive waiter refilled it.
He lounged back in his chair, and drew a long breath of
delight. The wine filled him with a pleasant sense
of exhilaration. He was quite wide awake now. He looked about him. Here
and there at tables were the faces of people he knew; he could count
three of his previous employers, and a dozen others to whose wants he
had at one time or another ministered. He turned to Jessel and began to
tell him items of scandal respecting the diners at the other tables.
Course followed course. The first bottle of champagne was followed by
a second. His tongue tripped a little by the time that was finished.
He had entirely forgotten the passage of time, forgotten also that at
ten o'clock his master was expecting him. They wound up the dinner with
liqueurs, coffee, and cigars. The room had nearly emptied when Jessel
paid the bill and they rose to leave. When they came into the street,
Under turned to his host.

"The finesh time've ever had in m' life," he remarked. "Never had sush
time, ole f'ler."

A clock struck ten. "Had somethin' to do, f'get wa' it was," he
remarked.

"Come and have another drink, and perhaps you'll remember," said
Jessel. He had drunk but sparingly himself.

"Itsh my turn this time," said Under.

He took Jessel's arm, for he found the pavement a little unsteady. The
two dropped first into one café, then into a second. The time slipped
away. Under grew more incoherent in speech as he poured more drinks
down his throat. Jessel thought it time for him to go home. He recalled
to Under's befogged intelligence the fact that his employer would be
expecting him.

"Tha'sh all ri'," said the valet, "goo' sort,
my guv'nor. Let him wait a bit."

Jessel had no intention that Guy should wait any longer. He piloted his
charge into the street again. The pavement was rockier than ever. Under
lurched and fell into a puddle. When he picked himself up, Guy's coat
was covered with mud. Guy's hat was also crushed and muddy. Cornelius
called a cab, and they drove together to the Albany. They had great
difficulty in passing the porter at the gate, but Jessel persuaded him
to allow them to enter. He piloted his charge to the door of Guy's
chambers. There he propped him against the door, and, pressing the
electric button, drifted away into the shadows. Unseen himself, he
watched the development of his plot. He saw the door open, and Under
sprawl forward into the entrance hall. He heard Guy's sharp exclamation
of amazement. That was all. The door closed. He waited some minutes
longer, half expecting that Under would be thrust out then and there,
but as nothing of the sort happened he betook himself homeward.

"I think you have done for yourself, my good Under," he murmured. "I
suppose I had better let the Master know, so that he will be prepared."
He felt no compunction at the thought that he had perhaps ruined a
fellow-creature. His chief feeling was one of gratification at the
artistic manner in which he had carried out his plans, to which was
added satisfaction that his patron would pay the expenses of his
evening's amusement without a murmur.

Under had indeed "done for himself," as Cornelius had phrased the
possible result. Guy had a horror of drunkenness. He had required
Under's services that evening, for he was expecting friends to drop
in for a smoke and a chat and possibly a game of bridge. Some of
the friends had been there when Under had been precipitated into the
entrance hall on the opening of the door. Guy had felt no pity for the
backslider. He saw that it was useless to remonstrate then. Under was
hopelessly incapable of speech, or even of holding himself erect. With
the aid of one of his friends Guy had carried the man to his room and
laid him on his bed. He recognised that the valet had garbed himself
in his (Guy's) clothes. He made up his mind to the course he should
pursue, and carried it out without hesitation.

When Under, pale-faced and shaky, appeared the next morning, Guy said
nothing until breakfast was served and cleared away. Then he told the
man to pack up his clothes and depart. He would not listen to the
excuses Under had ready. He felt that he had done the man more than
justice when he had paid him a month's wages over and above that due to
him, and he breathed more freely when the man had departed.

An hour later there came a ring at his bell. He answered the door
personally. Cornelius Jessel stood there.

"Mr. Guy Hora, sir?" he asked deferentially.

"What is it?" asked Guy.

Jessel handed him a note. Guy recognised Lynton Hora's handwriting and
tore open the envelope. "Dear Guy," he read, "I don't know whether you
could do anything amongst any of your friends for the bearer of this
missive. He isn't a very prepossessing-looking person, but I know him
to be a capable valet, and he is quite sober. Of course he is stupid,
but all servants are that or they wouldn't be servants. Some years
ago he valeted me for a while, and, running up against him in the
street the other day, he told me he was out of a berth, and I foolishly
promised to see if I could find him one. If you can relieve me of the
responsibility, do. When are you coming to see us again? It seems
ages since you looked us up, and Myra is crying her eyes out in your
absence. Yours, L. H."

That same evening, while Cornelius was sedately laying out Guy's
evening clothes in readiness for his new employer's return to
dress for dinner, Inspector Kenly was learning almost with
dismay that his literary lodger had that day arrived home,
packed his boxes in a hurry, paid a week's rent in lieu of
notice, and departed without giving a hint as to the reason
for his sudden departure, or whither he was bound.



CHAPTER XV

INSPECTOR KENLY FINDS A CLUE


Inspector Kenly had good cause for regretting the departure of the man
whose arrival in his home had been the source of so much annoyance to
him, for Cornelius Jessel had become possessed of professional interest
to him. His enquiries into the leakage of information contained in the
Foreign Office despatches had at last borne fruit. He had learned that
Lynton Hora had been a large speculator for the fall which had taken
place upon the publication of the stolen information, and that the
Commandatore had netted at least one hundred thousand pounds as the
result. It had been easy to identify the successful speculator with the
pseudo-clergyman who had called upon Cornelius Jessel. The detective
had counted a great deal upon obtaining useful information about Hora
from his lodger.

But the part Hora played in the Stock Exchange panic was not the only
item of information which had resulted from his investigations. He had
found that a certain Guy Marven had also speculated successfully. The
fact that the name was identical with that of the King's Messenger who
had carried the de-coded despatch from London to Sandringham did not
lead him to suspect that Captain Marven could be the culprit. To his
mind the use of the name pointed in another direction altogether. "If
the Captain had been in it," he argued, "he would have taken precious
good care that his name would never have appeared. It looks as if
whoever did the job has used Marven's name in order to throw suspicion
upon him."

Deprived of his hope of obtaining any information from Jessel,
Inspector Kenly bethought himself of his old friend, the hall porter at
Westminster Mansions. He began to haunt the place. Indeed, the revival
of interest in his old comrade was quite touching. However, the old
friend had lived long enough to understand that something more than
interest in himself was at work, when a busy man like Inspector Kenly
should happen to be passing twice in one day, and on each occasion have
a whole hour to spend in gossip.

He told the Inspector so at last.

Kenly laughed. "You're quite right," he said, "there's not the
slightest use in trying to hoodwink an old hand like you. Only, you
know what it is in the Yard, we are not allowed to take our closest
friends into our confidence. I only wish I could tell a man of your
intelligence what I'm after." He sighed, as if such a conversation
would have been a heartfelt relief.

The hall porter was flattered. "At least you can tell me who it is you
are enquiring about?" he said.

"I don't know that I ought to do so," replied Kenly dubiously.
"But," he added with the air of a man making up his mind to impart a
tremendous secret, "I'll risk it, Dwyer. I know that you will treat
anything I say as strictly confidential."

"Of course, you may. I hope you know me well
enough for that," replied Dwyer.

"It's those Hora people on the top floor that I am anxious to find out
something about," he remarked.

"The Horas," said the man, and a disappointed look spread over his
face. "There can't be anything against them; they are just about the
best tenants we've got in the place, been here ten years, too. Now, if
you'd said the Lorimers, or that foxy little chap Griddle, I could have
understood it."

"Still it is all about the Horas that I want to know," persisted Kenly.
"Tell me all about them, Dwyer."

The hall porter did so, and was surprised himself to learn how little
he knew about them. There was only one scrap of information which
promised to be of any service to the detective. His ears caught the
name of Guy. He remembered that Guy Marven had been the name of the
other operator.

"The son is named Guy?" he asked. "Does he live at home?"

"Just left us," was the reply. "Gone to live in the Albany on his own
account. Let me see; it was three--" He calculated the weeks on his
fingers. "No, four weeks ago."

Inspector Kenly perceived that the date coincided with that of the
speculation.

He thanked his old comrade, and strolled thoughtfully across the park
and dropped into Vine Street Police Station, where he was cordially
welcomed by the detective inspector on duty.

With him Kenly did not waste any time in preliminaries. When he had
discussed one or two matters of official interest, he broached his
object. "I want to find out something about one of the tenants in the
Albany," he remarked. "Are any of your people here friendly with the
man at the gate?"

"Isn't your card enough?" suggested the local detective.

"No," said Kenly. "It's a very delicate matter. I don't want to appear
to be making any especial enquiries."

"I had better come along with you myself, then," was the prompt
response. "I know the old chap pretty well, and I don't think he will
try to pull my leg, as he usually does when people ask him questions."

"That sort of man, is he?" asked Kenly, as they left the police station
in company.

"Fly as they make 'em," was the response. "There are usually more than
one or two young bloods living there, and when they don't pay up and
the writ-men are after them, it takes a smart man to keep them out.
Yet, since the present porter has been there, not a writ has been
served in the place."

He proceeded to give divers illustrations of the gate-keeper's
smartness until they arrived at the gate, where Kenly received
the introduction he desired. The inspector retired with his new
acquaintance into the little hutch with the big glass window where
the gate-keeper kept watch during his hours of duty, and proceeded
to put questions. He gave no hint of the object he had in view. In
fact, he invented a purely fictitious reason to account for his
enquiries, for, when professionally engaged, the detective had the
very faintest respect for the truth, though in private life he would
have felt horribly ashamed of the slightest deviation from exact fact.
He declared that he suspected a man in Hora's employ of
being concerned in some undefined criminal practices.

"Which man? The old one or the new?" asked the gate-keeper promptly.

"The new one," answered Kenly boldly.

"Not surprised to hear it at all," was the answer. "But if you had said
the last man, I could have soon told you you were on the wrong track,
for, saving the fact that he would lift his elbow too frequently, there
was not a scrap of vice in poor James Under."

"I suppose that's why he left?" hazarded Kenly.

"Yes," said the porter. "I wasn't on the gate that night, or I would
have seen that he didn't make a fool of himself. He came home, so
he told me, blind to the world, went up to Mr. Hora's chambers, and
when, in answer to his ring, his boss opened the door, he tumbled down
inside. So next morning off he went."

"Poor chap," said the Inspector. "Do you know where he's to be found. I
might put something in his way."

The gate-keeper searched amongst a number of scraps of paper,
unearthing one which had an address scribbled upon it. "He left it with
me in case I should hear of a berth going," he explained.

"I'll look him up when I have time," said Kenly. He was copying the
address into his note-book, when the gate-keeper nudged his arm.

"Here's the new man," he whispered.

Inspector Kenly looked up, and his surprise was expressed in his
strongest exclamation.

"By Henry!" he remarked.

Cornelius Jessel glided through the gate, a model of
smiling decorum. Inspector Kenly wheeled round promptly so that his
back was towards the window, nor did he turn again until Jessel's
footsteps were no longer audible.

"So he is your man?" remarked the gate-keeper curiously.

"He most certainly is my man," replied the detective emphatically.

"From the first time I set eyes on him," declared the porter, "I knew
he was a criminal. What has he been doing? I shouldn't be surprised if
it was murder. He walks for all the world like a poisoner."

Inspector Kenly laughed. "At present I cannot say that he is guilty of
anything," he remarked. "But I am glad to know that he is somewhere
handy when I want to lay my hand upon him. By the way," he added drily,
"has your observation of the gait of poisoners been extensive?"

The porter seemed puzzled.

"That's the only gate I know anything about," he answered, nodding his
head towards the entrance.

"Inspector Kenly smiled." "The gait--the walk of poisoners," he
remarked.

"Oh," said the porter, and a hearty guffaw rolled up from beneath his
capacious waistcoat. "If you'd have spoken in plain English I should
have understood you. But these newfangled words----"

Inspector Kenly did not explain. He set himself to amuse
his new acquaintance, and succeeded so well that, when an
hour later he declared that he must depart, he received
a cordial invitation to drop into the hutch whenever he
might be passing. He had succeeded better than
he had expected; not only had he discovered that his late lodger was
in Guy Hora's employment, but he had also been favoured with the
opportunity of making acquaintance with Guy's features, for, while he
had been chatting with the porter, Guy had driven up to the gate and
entered the building.

The detective began to feel that he had in his hands the threads which,
when unravelled, might lead him to some important discovery. The
unravelling might require infinite patience, but he was inured to that.
There was no detail too small for him to overlook. He went straight
from the Albany to the humble lodging in Soho, which was Under's
address. He needed all his philosophy. Under was not at home. Kenly
waited for him, waited for six hours until the valet came home, walking
unsteadily, and with a vacant look in his eye. The detective did not
speak to him. When the door closed on him he made his own way homewards
to Woodbine Cottage.

He was very tired when he laid his head on the pillow, but at eight
o'clock the next morning he was enquiring again for Under, and by aid
of his most persuasive smile succeeded in winning his way to the room
where the valet still lay, slumbering heavily.

"Here, wake up, old fellow," the detective shouted cheerily as he
closed the door, for the benefit of the landlady who had shown him up
to the room.

Under merely moved uneasily. A blind, with the grime of years upon
it left the room shrouded in gloom. Kenly drew it up, and opened the
window. It was a bare apartment. Grimy bed, a single chair, a cheap
washstand in painted wood with a cracked basin standing upon
it, a battered tin box, and a ragged strip of carpet formed the whole
of the furniture.

Under stirred as the light of day fell on his face. He sat up in bed
and rubbed his eyes drowsily. Then he caught sight of his visitor and
rubbed his eyes again.

"I say, look here," he remarked, when he had come to the conclusion
that he was not dreaming. "This is my room, you know."

"That's exactly the reason why I am here," remarked Kenly pleasantly.

Under stared more fixedly than before, and as Kenly seemed quite
unmoved he remarked:

"Well, really, it is a most awful cheek to come into another man's room
without being asked."

"Without being asked," said Kenly pleasantly. "You must have a very
bad memory, old chap, for your very last words yesterday evening were,
'Don't be a minute later than eight o'clock.'"

"Good Lord!" said Under, "I must have been drunk."

"Not a bit of it," replied Kenly. "You looked as sober as if you had
been drinking eight lemon-squashes one after the other."

"I swear I never did that in my life," said the valet fervently.

He was wide awake by this time, and he sat bolt upright on the bed.

"No, I don't suppose you did last night, or you would not
have gone to bed in your boots," remarked Kenly. "But all the
same, you promised to tell me some interesting facts about
your late employer, Mr. Guy Hora, and here I am."

Under stared more than ever. His eyes looked as if they would pop out
of his head.

"I--told--you--that I could tell you something about Mr. Hora?" he
gasped.

"That's what I have come for," replied the detective. The valet's
amazement found expression at last.

"Who the devil are you?" he asked, "for I'll be hanged if I ever saw
you in my life before."

The Inspector was enjoying his game of bluff immensely; he played his
best card.

"Detective Inspector Kenly of Scotland Yard," he answered.

At the information Under's mouth opened as wide as his eyes.

But the detective observed that there was no tinge of fear in his
amazement.

"Well, that is a rum go," remarked the valet, when he recovered his
speech.

"It most certainly is," replied Kenly. "You tell me that you are in a
position to give me important information, you invite me to call, and
then you declare that you have entirely forgotten not only your promise
but the man you made it to."

"But, I couldn't have made any such promise," declared the valet
earnestly, "for I have absolutely nothing to tell. A nicer
gentleman I've never had anything to do with than Mr. Hora,
and as for knowing anything which could be of interest to the
police----" An idea came into his brain. "Look here," he said, "I
suppose Mr. Hora hasn't sent you here to see if I took anything
which doesn't belong to me, because, if so, he's mistaken. I
admit I do take a drop too much now and again, though I have
fought hard against my little failing, but nobody's ever said that
James Under wasn't honest."

There was an emotional throb in the valet's voice, and Kenly hastened
to reassure him.

"No," he said. "My call was not in consequence of any charge which has
been made against you. It is entirely prompted by a desire to know
something of Mr. Guy Hora."

"But I've nothing to tell," the valet asseverated again.

Kenly appeared not to hear him. "Look here, Under," he said, "your mind
is wool-gathering this morning. You just have a wash to freshen you up,
and then we'll go out and get some breakfast together, and have a quiet
chat."

The valet found it impossible to combat Kenly's persistence. He did
as he was bidden. He brushed his clothes, he arrayed himself in a
clean collar, and he meekly preceded the detective down the stairs,
and walked by his side until they arrived at a tea-shop. But there he
paused. "Really, I couldn't look at food this morning," he said.

Kenly saw that he was speaking the truth; the man's shaking hands told
their own tale.

"After you've had a pick-me-up, you will be able to look your grub in
the face," he remarked.

He marched his man off to a chemist's shop, ordered the draught, saw
that his patient swallowed it to the last drop, and brought him back
again to the tea-shop. He was quite ready for his own breakfast by
this time, and he brought a healthy appetite to the demolition of the
eggs and bacon which he ordered. Under, also, after he had swallowed a
couple of cups of tea, found that his appetite had returned. He was
morally and physically a better man when the meal was done.

But while it was in progress they talked, or, at least, Kenly asked
questions and Under answered them. The detective learned a great deal
during that conversation of Guy's habits and of Guy's friends. There
was ample justification to his mind for the ruse he had employed, when
he heard the one fact that Guy was a frequent visitor at the house of
the Marvens. To his mind it seemed that the threads which he held in
his hand were unravelling themselves. He was compelled to listen to
a full account of the eventful evening which had led up to Under's
dismissal. Though amused, he was not particularly attentive until
the valet mentioned the name of his companion. When he heard that
Cornelius Jessel had been the tempter, he could barely restrain his
eagerness to obtain full particulars. Under was wax in his hands. Kenly
learned everything that the valet could tell him of the companion of
that disastrous evening. He made no comment. The threads which seemed
almost to be coming loose had of a sudden twisted themselves into an
inextricable knot. He took leave of Under shortly afterwards, and as he
walked away he muttered to himself, "By Henry! if I can make head or
tail of the confounded affair."

Still, he had learned enough to know that Lynton Hora and Guy Hora
and Cornelius Jessel were all in some way concerned. Moreover,
he began to suspect that a possibility which he had eliminated
from his reckoning was within the bounds of credibility. He
began to see that his enquiries must include the goings and
the comings and the doings of Captain Marven.



CHAPTER XVI

GUY MAKES A RESOLUTION


The dog days had come and the season was almost moribund when Captain
and Mrs. Marven and Miss Challys left town for their country house in
Essex, where Guy was to join them a week later, for he had definitely
accepted the invitation which had been pressed upon him.

London seemed empty to Guy with their departure. He had made it his
business in life to meet Meriel, and latterly not a day had passed
without his seeing something of her. If he had not met her with Mrs.
Marven at Raneleigh or Hurlingham or in the Park, he had been certain
to run against Captain Marven in the club, and he had never refused the
Captain's invitation to walk home with him for a cup of tea. At the
opera, at dances, there had always been the chance of meeting the girl
again, and chance had rarely proved unkind.

But he was not at all easy in his mind. The thought that he had been
accepting the hospitality and the friendship of the man whom he had
robbed of his trust, the man whose hand was given him in honest
friendship, ever haunted him. Yet the desire to be with Meriel at
all hazards overpowered his scruples. He made excuses for himself at
first, and, when he perceived that he was trying to cheat himself,
the half-formed resolution arose in his mind to so order his life
in future as to square it with Meriel's ideals. He realised that it
would not be difficult for him to do so, that a life of conventional
morality meant a life of ease, as compared with an existence ordered
on the lines of Hora's criminal philosophy. He told himself that his
father would appreciate his motives, and, though he might sneer at
his decision, yet would accept it. He even persuaded himself that
the Commandatore must have intended to suggest that he should break
away from the old life when he had persuaded him to take chambers of
his own. Yet, though he thus argued with himself, he did not go to
Westminster Mansions.

There was another reason for remaining away. The last sentence in the
note which Cornelius Jessel had brought him and which had resulted in
the immediate establishment of the shadow now under his own roof, had
suggested a new idea to him.

"Myra is crying her eyes out at your absence," the Commandatore had
written, and the written words had made him think of Myra in a new
light. Myra was not his sister. Sisters did not cry their eyes out
at their brothers' absence. Could it be that she cared for him in
anything but sisterly fashion? The train of thought once started made
him reflect. He could see now that Myra's demeanour had been different
to him in a hundred little particulars during the past few months.
The frank sisterly attitude of her early years had been replaced by
something entirely different. When they had been boy and girl together
she had been free as the day with him. A girl of moods, subject to
hurtling gusts of passion which would pass as swiftly as they came,
she had been prone to quarrel with him on the slightest pretext, and
as easily to forget the cause of her grievance. But of late--for quite
a year past--the attitude of the woman had materially altered from that
of the girl. Guy remembered, when he came to reflect, that he had quite
ceased to be the objective of any of her explosions of passion, that
she had been almost humbly solicitous of his welfare, his comfort, his
safety. He remembered her distress when Hora had broached the question
of his residing in chambers, her troubled demeanour when any new
adventure was projected. He had thought little of these things at the
time, but in the clearer vision which was vouchsafed to him through the
medium of his own feeling towards Meriel, he began to suspect something
of the truth. He had never thought of Myra in the light of anything but
a sister. Hardly that even, for Hora had not left him in ignorance of
her parentage, and of later years his thought of her had been rather as
of a good comrade, trained like himself to wage war with the world. But
if she should have learned to care for him, as he had learned to care
for Meriel! No, that would be impossible. He put the thought from him.
But it recurred. It was the second good reason which kept him away from
Westminster Mansions.

He was glad when his week of solitude was over, for a London
which did not contain Meriel was an absolute wilderness, peopled
only with meaningless shadows. The week had seemed a month,
more, a year. But it passed, and the day dawned at last which
was to bring them together again under the same roof. The mere
contemplation of sleeping beneath the same roof set Guy's
blood tingling in his veins. He awoke gay and bright. For a while he
would put away all harassing thoughts of the future, and drink of the
cup of happiness held to his lips.

Even as he lifted the cup, Hora, though absent, dropped a leaf of rue
therein which destroyed its sweetness.

Amongst his letters that morning was one from the Commandatore. "You
have not been to see us," he wrote, "and Myra is almost in despair. I
tell her that youth has its distractions which momentarily make one
forgetful of old ties and obligations. She seems to have some sort
of fancy that a feminine distraction may be the explanation of your
long absence, and is jealous of the unknown, an unphilosophic attitude
of mind with which the mere male cannot possibly cope. She cannot be
made to understand that pleasure is evanescent, and that satiety is
_avant courier_ to philosophy. I am not surprised that you find
your hands full; indeed, I am glad to think that you must be acquiring
a rich store of information which will be of the greatest service
in our future operations. _En passant_, if you see anything of
mine old enemy, do your best to cultivate the acquaintance. I have
a scheme in my mind which I think may enable me to pay my debt in
full. But more of that when we meet. I am in no hurry. Revenge is so
sweet a morsel that one rolls it on the tongue, instead of bolting
it whole, so I'll tell you about my idea when we return to town,
for I am going to take Myra away for a few days. She seems a little
pale, and sea breezes with companionship (of the other sex) is almost
invariably a specific for a sentimental malady. We go to
Scarborough to-day, but we shall be back in a fortnight. Let us see you
immediately we return."

When Guy laid down the letter the sparkle had gone out of the cup
of his enjoyment. He did not conceive that the writer of the letter
had been fully conversant with all his plans. He credited Hora
with trusting him as fully as he trusted Hora. To imagine that the
Commandatore had set a spy upon his movements never entered into
his calculations. He had no suspicions that the obsequious Jessel
who waited upon him so attentively was other than he seemed. So,
in following the dictates of his heart, he felt that he was acting
treacherously to his father, while if he were to fulfil his father's
desires he would sink unutterably in his own estimation. Between what
he considered his duty and his inclination, his mind was in turmoil.

The thought of Meriel expecting him proved the dominant factor in his
ultimate decision. While hesitating whether or no to telegraph an
excuse for not keeping his appointment, Jessel announced that he was
going on with the luggage. At that moment Guy formed the resolution
definitely and absolutely that he would have done with the past.

The resolution strengthened on his journey. If Lynton Hora could have
known the effect his letter had produced he might have hesitated
before he posted it. But he had only suspected some weakening of
Guy's enthusiasm, and he had thought that a reminder would be quite
sufficient to recall Guy's errant fancy. Perhaps had he not trained
Guy, for his own protection, to so honest a conception of loyalty
to his friends, the subtle poison of his letter might have produced
the effect he had intended. As it happened, the suggestion Hora had
desired to convey, that Meriel should be a temporary distraction, to
be tossed lightly aside when it suited his purpose, never came home
to Guy. The further suggestion, that Myra was waiting and longing
for him, did, however, affect him unpleasantly, even though he could
truthfully declare that he had never given her reason to imagine that
his affection towards her was more than brotherly.

The final suggestion that he should insinuate himself into the
confidence of the Marvens in order to minister to Hora's scheme of
revenge was, however, the culminating point. His whole nature revolted
at the thought. Though by his early training he saw nothing wrong in
preying upon the world, instinctively his mind rebelled at the idea
of victimising his friends. Though the world might dub him thief--he
would have shrugged his shoulders in amusement at the world's folly
in doing so--yet his sense of honour was far keener than that of the
majority of those who would have thrown the epithet at him, Captain
Marven, henceforward, should be secure, so far as he was concerned.
There was no obligation upon him to take upon himself the burden of
another man's quarrel, even though that other man were his own father.
The philosophic Commandatore himself would necessarily admit the logic
of such a decision.

Busied with such thoughts, it seemed to Guy that he had hardly entered
the cab before it stopped at the railway station. He had no intention
of turning back. Jessel was awaiting him on the platform. He saw his
master into his seat and retired to another compartment, where he had
reserved a corner seat for himself. Guy had given him no instructions
to proceed beyond the railway station, so Cornelius decided that he
might just as well take it for granted that he was to accompany his
master, particularly as Hora had impressed upon him the necessity for
obtaining exact information regarding Guy's relationship with the
members of the Marven household. Still busied with his train of ideas,
Guy did not bestow another thought upon his valet.

The train wandered but slowly onwards to its destination, far too
slowly for Guy's desires, but Whitsea was off the main route to
anywhere, and the railway service was the minimum which a sleepy-headed
management thought would serve the necessities of the situation. But
at last Guy knew that he was nearing his destination. The country
stretched out flat on either side of the railway track, unbroken for
miles. Through the open window of his compartment entered the cool
salt breath of the sea. On his right a gleam of silver shone amidst
the green and crimson carpet of the marsh lands. The silver streak
broadened. Now it bore a red-winged barge on its bosom, and there
came in view the white wings of a flight of small craft skimming upon
the water. Next appeared a cluster of red-tiled, red brick houses
shimmering in the heat. The train drew into a station, a porter roused
himself from his afternoon nap and strolled slowly down the platform
calling "Whitsea! Change here for Whitsea," in a melancholy sing-song.
Guy picked up his stick and alighted. Would Meriel come herself to
meet him? He had asked the question of himself a hundred times on the
journey, and a hundred times had told himself that he expected far too
much.

But Meriel was there, and the delight in his heart showed
in his eyes as he went forward with outstretched hand to welcome her.
Her eyes dropped under his ardent glance, and the colour flushed her
cheek. Guy had seen no one but Meriel. Another voice recalled his
wandering faculties.

"I am just as delighted to welcome you to Whitsea, Mr. Hora, as Meriel
can be."

It was Guy's turn to flush, as he half turned to meet Mrs. Marven's
kindly glance.

"I only saw Miss Challys," he remarked simply.

"That was quite obvious," replied Mrs. Marven, as she took Guy's
hand, "and I am inclined to think that if I had been in your place I
shouldn't have seen anyone else, either. She is a pretty picture, isn't
she?" There was a tender inflection in her voice which put Guy at his
ease.

"There can be no two opinions about that," he answered heartily.

"Auntie would make me vain, if I were not so already," said the girl
demurely, as she thrust her arm in Mrs. Marven's. "If you'll just tell
the porter which is your luggage, he will see that it is sent on. We
are not more than half a mile from the station, and we thought you
would like to walk to the Hall."

"Nothing could suit me better," declared Guy.

They strolled along the platform talking. Guy's kit bag and dressing
case were tossed out on the platform, and Jessel was already mounting
guard over them. Guy did not recognise his servant until he was close
to him. His surprise was apparent in the tone of his voice.

"Hullo, Jessel!" he said. "What on earth are you doing here?"

The man touched his hat. "Beg your pardon, sir," he said. "Didn't you
intend me to come? You said nothing, so of course----"

Guy interrupted him. "I thought I had told you! But it doesn't matter.
Just see that the porter has my luggage all right. You can get the next
train back."

He turned away. Cornelius touched his hat. His face expressed
disappointment. Mrs. Marven observed his fallen countenance and came to
the rescue.

"I ought to have told you to bring your man with you," she remarked to
Guy, "and unless you have something you want him to do for you, you had
better let him come to the Hall. I know that the Captain's man will be
delighted that you have brought him, for I don't mind telling you now,
that he detests valeting anyone but his own master."

With a word of thanks Guy dismissed the subject from his
thoughts. He was supremely indifferent to Jessel's presence.
Meriel was beside him. Nothing else mattered.



CHAPTER XVII

STAR-DUST


Whitsea lies on the estuary of one of those Essex rivers which flow
into the North Sea through a wilderness of shallows. The visitor who
goes to it expecting to find any one of the ordinary attractions of
the average seaside watering-place may make up his mind to be wofully
disappointed. But the visitor with a delight in the unconventional and
the unhackneyed need not fear boredom. The salt marshes which border
the river for miles have a wild beauty entirely their own. Flowers
grow there as if the sea were no enemy to them. Then the six miles of
sheltered water which lie between Whitsea and the sea give protection
from wild weather, which the yachtsman is not slow to appreciate. So
when the days begin to lengthen the Whitsea River begins to be alive
with sailing craft, and when the summer days really come, it has a
population which lives entirely upon the water.

At Whitsea the Hall was the most prominent residence, even as
Captain Marven was the most distinguished inhabitant. It was just a
simple, kindly English house, at one with its simple, kindly English
inhabitants. The life there was a revelation to Guy. Never before had
he known what it was to be an inmate of a pure unpretentious English
country home.

"You will find us dull, I am afraid," had been Mrs.
Marven's warning when she had invited him, "for excepting some
sailing and later in the year a little rough shooting Whitsea has no
attractions."

Dull! Guy had never found a life so full. Every moment of the day
provided a new item of interest.

The house itself was a haven of peace. The long, low white stone
structure stood on a little knoll looking with all its many eyes in
the face of the southing sun. It was girt about with an old garden
where the scent of roses disputed with the perfume of carnations for
supremacy, a garden where tall white lilies stood sentinel over serried
ranks of sweet peas, and gazed down unmoved upon the riot of colours
that filled the borders. Beyond the garden a meadow dropped down into
the saltings, and beyond the saltings the sea wall kept the tides at
bay, and ever the sweet fresh breezes dinted the surface of the water
and lifted the petals of the roses and whispered stories of the ocean
in the ears of those who walked in the garden, tempting them to venture
forth in search of the places where they were born.

Daily two of the inmates of the Hall responded to the temptation.
Meriel loved the sea. Guy was equally fervent in his adoration, and
there, ever before them, was the means of gratifying their desires
in the shape of the graceful ten-ton cutter _Witch_ lying at
her moorings opposite the house, or the rightly christened little
eighteen-footer _Dainty_, which ever seemed to chafe at the chain
which saved her from going adrift. Oftentimes Captain Marven made
one of the party, more occasionally Mrs. Marven accompanied them,
but there were occasions when Meriel and Guy found themselves alone.
Then when the breeze sang in Guy's ears, and the spray tasted
salt on his lips, he felt a mad impulse to sail on and on with his
precious cargo right away out of the old life into a totally new one.

The two young people were drawn very close together in those days.
Meriel took no pains to conceal the pleasure she found in Guy's
companionship. Guy made no effort to disguise the fact that life held
only one hope for him. If there was a doubt at the back of his mind
that the hope was foredoomed to be disappointed, he put it away. He
would be happy while he might. Sorrow was for the sad days of autumn.
There was only one jarring note in the symphony. It was a trifling one
and did not affect Meriel. On the first day they went for a sail they
passed an excellently appointed steam yacht lying at anchor in the
fairway of the river. A figure immaculately clad in blue jacket and
white flannels raised a bridge-cap as they passed.

"Hildebrand Flurscheim, by all that's holy," remarked Guy.

"Still searching for his missing pictures," said Meriel laughing.

The thought was an unpleasant one. But Guy was not allowed to forget
it. Flurscheim found out that the Marvens were at their house and he
called, and, undeterred by a cool reception, called again. Guy could
not help but realise that if his host and hostess had been aware that
he was the burglar who had raided the connoisseur's treasure-house, the
coolness accorded Flurscheim would be nothing to the reception he might
expect.

But Captain and Mrs. Marven would have both been horrified at the mere
suggestion that Guy could be guilty of such a deed. They were fully
cognisant of the love-story developing under their eyes, acquiescing
smilingly. They anticipated an idyll. They had watched Guy carefully,
and they had seen no fault in him. He had an unblemished university
career and was apparently sufficiently endowed with this world's goods.
He seemed chivalrous, honourable, and, above all, deeply in love.
Thinking of the days of their own wooing, they anticipated a happy
union.

A week passed, the second week was near its end, when a shadow was cast
on the sunlight of Guy's happiness, and again the gloom was produced by
a letter from Hora, forwarded to him from his chambers.

"We shall be home on the Monday," wrote the Commandatore. "Please come
and see me on the Tuesday at latest, for I have now completed my plans,
and nothing remains but to put them into execution. Again let me remind
you to do your best to cultivate the Marven people, if the opportunity
arises. Any knowledge you may acquire concerning them is likely to
prove useful."

Guy took the letter with him into the open, where he tore it into
tiny fragments and scattered them to the breeze. Cornelius Jessel
from Guy's bedroom window watched the flying fragments longingly. So
also did another man who, seated on the sea wall some hundred yards
away, was just near enough to realise what Guy was doing. But neither
Cornelius nor the stranger made any efforts to recover the fragments.
Detective Inspector Kenly had no desire to call attention in so pointed
a fashion to the fact that he was visiting Whitsea.

Guy was unaware of the dual observation, even as Jessel was unaware
that his late landlord was so near to him. His action was merely
prompted by an outbreak of anger at the despicable part he was
expected to play. He did not at first remember that he had not told
the Commandatore of his projected visit. His anger passed, for he
thought that the expectation was founded on a misapprehension. But the
reiteration of Hora's intention, his renewal of the belief that he,
Guy, would be as ready as heretofore to participate in the carrying
out of his plans warned Guy that he must no longer delay coming to an
explanation with the Commandatore. Hora had named a date. That date
would suit Guy as well as another. It would not be fair to his father
to delay any longer.

Guy was unusually silent that morning, and when Meriel joined him she
was surprised that he should be so preoccupied. She feared to rally him
on the subject, for she suspected a reason for his preoccupation which
she would not name to herself.

They went aboard the _Witch_ about nine o'clock. There was a fair
wind from the north, the tide had just begun to ebb and there was every
promise of an ideal day. Gradually Guy's preoccupation melted away. It
was impossible to remain preoccupied on a brilliant summer morning in
Meriel's presence. By the time they had cast off their moorings he was
chattering away freely as ever. Hora was forgotten for a while. He was
remembered later.

"I must be going back to town on Tuesday," Guy said in reply to a
suggestion of some proposed trip for the ensuing week.

"Going back to town," remarked Meriel. There was more than surprise,
there was regret in her tone.

"I shall hate to do so," said Guy, "but I had a letter from my father
this morning and he particularly wishes to see me."

Guy's voice had unconsciously hardened as he spoke. His brow was
knitted and his lips were compressed. He looked up and he caught sight
of a something in her eyes which chased away the frown.

"Of course, you must go then," said Meriel.

Guy responded to the regretful note in the girl's voice.

"You will be sorry to lose me?" he asked eagerly.

The ghost of a blush fluttered for a moment on her cheeks.

"We shall all be very sorry," she answered equivocally. Guy was about
to press the personal question home, but the sails shivered. Meriel
glanced upward. "Give me the tiller," she said. "You are steering
awfully badly this morning. Why, you've let the _Witch_ run right
up into the wind."

Guy laughed as he vacated his post at the helm. For the moment he was
satisfied. He had seen an answer in Meriel's eyes to his unspoken
question which set his mind at rest. Before the day was out that
question should be answered, but the time was not yet.

The _Witch_ flew along, bending over to the breeze. The river
widened and the banks fell away. The cutter begun to curtsey to
the waves, and now and again a spatter of spray was tossed high
in the air. Guy took the tiller again and Meriel unpacked the
luncheon basket. With appetites sharpened by the breeze they
picnicked on deck. They still pressed onward until the houses
on the white cliff before them begun to be plainly visible. Meriel
looked at her watch.

"We are very near Clacton, and it is two o'clock," she remarked. "Isn't
it time we thought about returning?" she added regretfully.

The summer breeze began to show a disposition to change, veering to
the east. Guy put the helm down and went about. The wind veered still
more, though it still held. Guy gave the mainsail more sheet, and the
_Witch_ ran merrily before the breeze over the slackening tide. An
hour passed and the wind became perceptibly lighter. The afternoon sun
shone down from a cloudless sky, while a purple heat haze gathered on
the horizon.

"Luckily we turned back when we did," said Meriel. "We shall hardly get
home on the tide even now. Hadn't we better set the spinnaker?"

Guy acceded to the request. The breeze freshened again, and for another
hour the water rippled musically under their bows. Then the breeze died
away completely.

Guy shrugged his shoulders. "There's nothing for it but a policy of
masterly inaction," he said. "Don't you think it is time for a cup of
tea?"

He relinquished the tiller to his companion and dived below to light
the stove, and place the kettle upon it. By the time the kettle boiled
an absolute calm had fallen, the sea might have served as a mirror, the
sails hung straight and still, the heat had become almost oppressive.

Neither Meriel nor Guy were troubled. They were together, and although
the boat seemed motionless they were drifting homewards. Guy especially
was in no anxiety to return. Tea drunk and the cups washed and put
away, Guy brought cushions from the cabin and made a comfortable couch
on deck for Meriel, while he sat by the helm looking down upon her.

Their talk became personal. Meriel's confidences were those of a
pure-hearted girl, and Guy, listening, longed to repay confidence with
confidence. If he only dared! But his risks were too great. How could
this pure girl be brought to comprehend his point of view? Yet he knew
that some day he must make the effort. Perhaps if she cared enough for
him she might strive to understand. If she cared enough! Yes, that was
the whole question. Her views were so totally opposed to those which
he had imbibed from his earliest youth, those which he knew now to be
hopelessly wrong--not through any intellectual conviction, but merely
by his intuition of what would be his companion's attitude towards
them. He would make her understand how he came to have held such views
and where they had led him. But not if she did not care. He could not
win her under false pretences. She must know all about him, exactly
what he was, the hidden life which none save Lynton Hora and Myra
knew. Yet first he must know if she did care for him, otherwise such
confidence would be treachery to Hora. His thoughts constrained him to
silence. When his replies became monosyllabic Meriel looking up saw
that his countenance had become overcast. She, too, became silent.

The boat drifted.

Meriel lay back on the cushions. Her eyes half-closed. She
wondered what thought could be troubling her companion.
She glanced up again and met his eyes.

"Something is troubling you," she demanded suddenly.

"Yes, something is troubling me," answered Guy moodily. With an
impulsive gesture the girl held out her hand. Guy grasped it. The
little sunbrowned hand was not withdrawn.

"Can I help?" she asked quietly.

"I cannot tell," he replied. "Until----" The moment had arrived when
he felt that he must give utterance to his thoughts or remain forever
silent. He braced himself to the effort. His voice was almost harsh.

"Meriel," he said. She started at the sound of her name on his lips.
"Meriel----" He paused.

There was no coquetry in her nature. She understood the unspoken
thought as clearly as if it had been vocalised in a flood of eloquence.

"Guy," she answered shyly.

The one musical syllable was sufficient. Their glances met. Each read
in the other's eyes the words they longed to hear. Lips closed on lips.

The sun shone down fiercely. The boat drifted.

"Then you do care for me?" Guy asked presently.

"Do I care?" Meriel looked happily into his face. "If anyone were to
tell you that the sea had become dry you might sooner believe the tale
than that I should have ceased to care for you."

"That is love," said Guy. "I know, for my love for you is also greater
than the ocean."

She was seated beside him. One hand was on the tiller, the other
encircled her waist and she leaned her head on his shoulder with a sigh
of content. The westering sun was dropping to the horizon, and on the
path of gold it painted on the waters the boat still drifted. Was this
to be the omen of their future lot? In his rapture Guy thrust away all
disturbing memories. He loved and he was beloved. Nothing could alter
that one fact. The whole world was transformed for him. The sun dropped
lower still. A rosy flush crept into the sky. The sea, unflecked by a
single ripple, glowed with opal fires. Nothing broke the stillness.
Meriel, too, lived her brief hour in love's fairyland.

The boat still drifted. The mouth of the Whitsea River was narrowing in
upon them. The sea wall stood up blackly against the pellucid sky. The
sun went down behind the purple bank of mist. The colours faded. The
sweet grey calm of summer twilight spread its mantle over the water.
From somewhere on the shore a sandpiper called to his mate.

Meriel awoke to reality with a start.

"We shall never make our moorings to-night, Guy," she cried. "It must
be eight o'clock, and we are quite four miles from home."

"I should be quite content, dear," he answered, "to drift along
forever."

"You would tell another tale when you came to examine our store of
provisions," she answered merrily.

Guy looked at his watch. "The tide will run for another half hour," he
said. "No, unless a breeze should spring up the _Witch_ will never
make Whitsea to-night."

"We shall have to leave her," answered Meriel promptly.

"Why not wait for the next tide?" urged Guy.

"No, Auntie will be so anxious," the girl replied. "If we
drop anchor here and stow away comfortably we can easily row home in
the dingey."

Guy stood up and glanced around the horizon. The air was perfectly
still. There was not a movement in the sails.

"We'll let her drift so long as the tide makes, and meanwhile I'll make
things snug," said Guy. The blocks creaked musically as he gathered
in foresail and jib. The topsail fluttered to the deck. It was warmer
work getting in the mainsail and darkness was gathering rapidly. But
the canvas was stowed away at last, the halliards made fast, every rope
coiled away in its place.

"The tide is on the turn," said Meriel. "If we can edge in a little
nearer the south shore the _Witch_ will lie as safely as she would
on her moorings."

Guy hauled up the chain and cast the anchor loose. "When you are ready,
dear," he said.

"You may let go," she cried a minute later. The anchor dropped with
a heavy splash and the rattle of the chain as Guy paid it out seemed
almost a desecration of the silence. When the anchor held, Guy once
more went below to trim and light the riding lamp. By the time his
job was finished and the lamp was swung, the sky had gained a deeper
tint of blue and the stars had begun to sparkle. He drew the dingey
alongside and held out his hand to Meriel.

"You must let me take one oar," she said as she stepped into the boat.
"It will be a stiff pull against the tide."

"When I am tired I'll tell you," he answered. He looked
regretfully at the cutter as he dipped his oars.

"It seems ungracious to leave her," he said, "since the happiest
moments of my life have been passed aboard her."

"Good old _Witch_," replied Meriel softly.

Night's mantle of darkness and silence enwrapped them. The stars
studded the moonless sky, the plunk of the oars in the rowlocks and
the drip of the water from the blades alone disturbed the perfect
stillness. The boat drove onwards, leaving a trail of light in its
wake. The darkness had made yet another of nature's marvels manifest.
The water was full of phosphorescent light. Guy rested on his oars.
Meriel lifted a handful of water and poured it back into the sea. It
was as if she had poured out a handful of gems. She threw a handful of
the diamonds in the air, and every gem as it fell again into the water
struck gleams of light from the surface. They leaned over the side of
the boat, and here and there in the blackness the lights sparkled for a
moment and were hidden again.

"The water is full of star-dust," said Meriel. "See!" she added
eagerly. Guy followed the direction of her outstretched finger.

A phantom form lighting its way beneath the surface sailed by, a myriad
of the sparkling points accompanying it.

"Even the sea has its spirits," she remarked.

"On a night like this it is possible to idealise even a jelly fish," he
answered whimsically.

He took again to the oars. Few words were spoken between them.

They came at last to their landing place. Guy made the boat fast and
joined Meriel on the bank. He clasped her lightly in his arms. "Tell
me you love me, Meriel," he demanded almost fiercely.

Her assurance was whispered only, but Guy recognised an intensity as
great as his own. He held her closely to him.

"I have something to--say," he told her. "I cannot ask you to marry
me,"--the words were wrung from him--"until I have told you something
about myself which you do not suspect."

She did not move in his embrace. He could see her eyes shining in the
darkness.

"Nothing you could tell me would make any difference, Guy," she
answered.

A sharp pain stabbed his heart. "I am not worthy, Meriel," he said.
"And I fear that to-morrow you will tell me so."

"As if it were possible," she answered.

"I have been very happy to-day," he continued. "Such happiness cannot
last. When you know what I am in reality you will be glad to forget me."

This was more than the detraction of the ardent lover. Meriel realised
that there was the note of real suffering in his voice. She waited
almost with dread for him to continue. And Guy was upon the point of
pouring out his whole story. But the chance passed. A voice hailed them
from the lawn of the Hall.

"Is that you, Meriel?"

"Auntie is watching for our return," she said shyly. "Come."

Guy followed her along the path to the house.

"To-morrow," he said and she understood.



CHAPTER XVIII

CORNELIUS JESSEL DREAMS OF A FORTUNE


The morning was heavy with an almost unnatural calm. By nine o'clock
the sun's rays glowed with the intensity of noon. The flowers drooped
their heads and the leaves hung listlessly. Cornelius Jessel, passing
out of the back way from the Hall, on his way to the postoffice, had
not covered a dozen yards before he paused to mop his brow with his
handkerchief. He bore with him the letter in which Guy announced to
Hora his intention of returning to town. It was the briefest of notes,
disclosing nothing of the intention of the writer. But it was not the
only letter which Jessel carried. In the other envelope was the report
which the shadow man had penned to the Master. The envelope was stamped
and sealed, but Cornelius took it from his pocket and looked at it
and frowned. He replaced it in his pocket and proceeded on his way.
He did not know whether to post it or not. For the first time since
he had undertaken the part of spy upon Guy's actions he had wilfully
suppressed an item of information which had come into his possession
concerning Guy. It was such an important item of information, too.
So important that he had gasped for breath when he realised what the
discovery he had made really meant.

On the previous afternoon and evening he had taken advantage of Guy's
absence to make a careful examination of his master's property. He had
frequently done so before, but without discovering anything of any
interest. But on this occasion he was more fortunate. He had long been
curious concerning the contents of a little silver-bound box which
reposed in a corner of Guy's dressing case. He had oftentimes made
discreet attempts to pick the lock but without success, and he dared
not venture on forcing it lest by damaging the box he should excite
suspicion. He guessed that sooner or later he would get the opportunity
he desired for examining the contents of the little casket, and the
occasion had arrived at last. Guy had left his keys on the dressing
table and one of the bunch fitted the lock.

When the lid was opened, Cornelius, at first sight of its contents,
gave a sniff indicative of disgust. He saw a little lace handkerchief,
a glove, an opera programme, a few withered rose leaves, and an
infinite contempt for the young man he served swept over him. There
was no trace of sentiment hidden away in the heart of Cornelius.
But when he tossed the trumpery aside he drew a long breath of
surprise. Beneath the valueless trifles was concealed an article
of price--a little golden frame enclosing an exquisite miniature
on ivory of a girl with a wealth of fair hair, the painting
surrounded with a circlet of brilliants. At first he did not grasp
the significance of the discovery. The likeness of the miniature
to Meriel Challys seemed to him a full explanation as to why it
should be in his employer's possession. But as he turned the frame
over in his hand, counting the stones in the setting, weighing the
trinket delicately on two fingers to estimate the weight of the
gold, he remembered that somewhere he had seen a description of
some such article. Where? He had not to rack his brain very
long before he was able to recall where he had seen the miniature
described. Like many another person who longs for the prize without
incurring the attendant risks, Cornelius had assimilated every detail
which had been made public concerning the Flurscheim robbery. His mouth
had watered at the published descriptions of the stolen articles and
now here--if he was not greatly mistaken--was one of them in his own
hand.

At the heels of this thought came another which almost made his
heart cease beating. Five thousand pounds reward! Five thousand
pounds had been offered for such information as would lead to the
conviction of the thief and to the recovery of the stolen property.
Five--thousand--pounds! Five thousand pounds was lying waiting for
him, Cornelius Jessel. Yet, dazzled as he was by the prospect of
the acquisition of such wealth, he hesitated a long while before
he could persuade himself to make use of the information which had
come into his possession. It was the thought of the Master which
gave him pause. In view of the discovery which he had made he
began to be timorous. He could no longer believe that the Master's
interest in Guy Hora was the interest of the hawk in the pigeon.
Dimly he began to comprehend that unknowingly he was being used as
pawn in a game which he did not comprehend. Supposing then that any
effort of his own to secure that five thousand pounds should run
counter to any plan of the Master's? He shivered at the thought,
for he had a very real fear of the Master's capacity for mischief.
He had locked the miniature and the glove and the rose leaves away
again and set his wits to work to discover a plan by which he might
obtain the five thousand pounds without the fact that he was
the informer being disclosed to anybody. The more he pondered upon
the subject the more convinced he became that fortune was within his
grasp. He could not have made the discovery at a more opportune moment.
He was in the country surrounded by a lot of simple country folk,
and within reach was the victim of the burglary, who had offered the
reward. What better plan could be conceived than that of taking his
information straight to the fountain head? He would then be able to
make his own terms. But he saw that it would be necessary to have some
proof of the correctness of his statements. He paid another visit to
Guy's dressing case after providing himself with a pencil and oiled
paper. With these he made a series of tracings of the miniature,
and, clumsy as they were, yet he trusted that they might be clear
enough for identification. Thus provided, he determined to take the
first opportunity afforded him of communicating with Mr. Hildebrand
Flurscheim.

The determination carried with it as a necessary corollary
the decision to keep his discovery concealed from everybody,
particularly from the Master. He would have felt quite easy in
his mind if he could have assured himself that the Master was not
already acquainted with the fact that Guy possessed the miniature.
On the other hand, Cornelius argued that it was quite possible
that the man who was paying him to keep a watch upon Guy might be
actuated by dread of a confederate playing him false. That was
a strong reason why he should not postpone communicating with
Flurscheim. The reward would go to the first in the field with the
information. Then if the Master were implicated, and if he should be
captured, Cornelius saw safety for himself. Therefore when
he wrote his daily report to the Master of Guy's movements he entirely
omitted to mention the momentous discovery he had made, and yet so
terrified was he that he should bring his employer's vengeance upon
himself by his failure to report it, that a dozen times on the way to
the postoffice he drew the letter from his pocket and looked at it
and considered whether he should not reopen the envelope and add the
information which he had suppressed.

Even when he had dropped the letter into the box he nearly entered the
postoffice to ask for it back again, and only prevented himself from
doing so by declaring to himself that it would be easy to give the
information thereafter if circumstances pointed to the desirability
of his doing so. But once the letter was posted Cornelius became
bolder. The posting of the letter was in the nature of a definite
act committing him to a definite policy. It was no use looking back,
especially with the prospect of five thousand pounds to be earned by
merely speaking a few words. He forgot the heat. He walked briskly away
from the postoffice towards the little embankment which Whitsea village
proudly designated "The Front."

It seemed hotter than ever there. The tide was low and the air
shimmered in the heat reflected from the silvery banks of mud. He
placed his hand on the stone parapet of the low wall and drew it back
hastily. The stone was nearly hot enough to have blistered his hand.
He looked out on the river. Almost opposite him was Mr. Hildebrand
Flurscheim's yacht, and if Cornelius's eyes were to be trusted Mr.
Hildebrand Flurscheim himself was reclining beneath an awning on the
deck. The opportunity was too good to be missed. Cornelius looked
around for a boatman to put him aboard. There was none visible, and he
could not muster up courage to hail the yacht. The Whitsea hotel showed
an inviting open door just handy. Cornelius felt suddenly thirsty. He
accepted the invitation of the open door, and while he quenched his
thirst with a bottle of iced ginger beer with something in it, he made
known his desire to be put aboard Mr. Flurscheim's yacht to the barmaid.

Before the words were well out of his mouth a man who had followed
Cornelius into the hotel remarked, "I'll put you aboard the boat with
pleasure, Mr. Jessel."

Jessel's first impulse was to fly. To be suddenly accosted by name when
so far as he knew there was no one in Whitsea except the servants at
the Hall who could be aware of his identity, was disconcerting to say
the least. He stifled the impulse as best he could, and, turning on his
heel, faced the speaker. He saw a pleasant, open-faced man of fifty or
thereabouts holding out his hand.

"Didn't expect to see me here, eh, any more than I expected to have the
pleasure of meeting you? But the world's a little place, and this sort
of weather, if one is likely to knock up against old acquaintances,
there's no spot more likely than where you find a pretty girl mixing
long drinks with a lot of ice in 'em. That's right, isn't it, miss?"

The barmaid giggled.

"A slice of lemon, a bottle of Schweppe, a lump of ice, and a suspicion
of white satin, if you please," he said before turning again to Jessel
and continuing volubly. "You don't recognise me, eh? Well, I'm not
surprised, for now I come to think of it we haven't exchanged more
than a dozen words in our lives. My name's Kenly."

"Oh!" Cornelius remembered and immediately felt easy in his mind. He
had no reason for dreading his late landlord. He took the proffered
hand.

"This is a surprise," he said. "Who would ever have expected to meet
you here?"

"The same to you," said Kenly. He pointed to Jessel's glass. "Drink
up and have another and tell how you are getting on," he said. "The
missis will be pleased to hear, for she's always telling me that she's
never likely to have such a nice gent in the house to do for, and she's
always cracking on about your being obliged to leave, and how certain
she is never to get another like you."

Cornelius smiled and emptied his glass. "Well, as you insist----" he
said.

"Another of the same," said Kenly affably.

"And what brings you down here?" asked Cornelius.

"Taking my holiday," remarked Kenly expansively. "This is just the sort
of a place that suits me. No sand, no niggers. Plenty of fresh air and
sunshine, a boat to potter about in, and some of the real sort to drink
when you're thirsty, that's the place that suits me down to the ground,
so I'm here. I suppose you're down for a change, too?"

"Not exactly," replied Cornelius. "I have to combine business and
pleasure, too." He took a long draught of the fresh brew which the
barmaid handed to him, and, assuming his most important air, he changed
the topic.

"I suppose Mrs. Kenly is with you?"

"Not much," answered the detective with a broad wink.
"I know a bit too much to bring the missis on a holiday, and, if you
are married, you'd understand."

Cornelius laughed and glanced at the barmaid. "You can't tell me
anything," he said.

"No," answered Kenly. "Half the bachelors to-day know more than the
married people, and that's a fact, ain't it, miss?"

The barmaid giggled again. "You're a caution," she said. The
conversation progressed swimmingly, and ten minutes later Cornelius
embarked on a dingey, having graciously allowed Kenly to put him aboard
Mr. Flurscheim's yacht. He lounged in the stern, assuming his most
important air, while Kenly pulled away at the oars. He was fully alive
to the fact that he would create a much better impression going aboard
thus than if he had been compelled to borrow a boat and pull himself
out to the yacht.

Kenly ran him up alongside, steadied the boat by the side of the
ladder, and then let his dingey drop astern to a sufficient distance to
allow him to observe Cornelius introduce himself to Flurscheim. He saw
that the two men were strangers, and he gathered that the connoisseur
was annoyed at Jessel's invasion of his privacy. He saw the connoisseur
jump up suddenly at something which was said and begin to pace the deck
in manifest agitation. He saw Jessel standing unmoved, and then after a
brief conference both men went down the companion into the saloon.

The detective immediately realised that there was a chance of his
learning what errand had taken Jessel to the yacht. Half a dozen
strokes took him alongside again, and, making his painter fast to the
yacht's anchor chain, he stood up in the dingey as it drifted level
with an open port. As he had suspected the porthole gave upon the
saloon, and as the dingey came opposite he could hear two voices in
excited colloquy. One was easily recognised as Jessel's, and the other
Kenly had just as little difficulty in recognising as Flurscheim's.

"Is that anything like the face on one of your miniatures?" said Jessel.

"I could swear to it," said Flurscheim.

"And the portrait--is it like anyone you know?" asked the valet.

"You've seen it," cried the Jew eagerly. "You must have done, for the
miniature is so like Miss Challys that she might have sat for the
portrait."

"I have seen it and I can tell you where it is at the present moment,"
answered the valet.

"Where? Where?" cried the Jew eagerly.

"You don't expect me to tell you straight away, do you?" asked Jessel
in an injured tone.

The Jew took no notice. "And the other boxes and the pictures--can you
tell me where my Greuze is?"

"No, I can't, at least not at present," said the valet coolly, "but I
reckon that if once I put you on the track of one of the things that
has been stolen it won't be my fault if you don't find out where the
rest of 'em are."

"Well, well," said Flurscheim, impatiently, "tell me where the
miniature is?"

There was silence and the detective listened impatiently.

"Have you lost your tongue?" demanded Flurscheim angrily.

"What about the reward you offered?" said Jessel. "Five
thousand pounds, wasn't it, for such information as shall lead to the
conviction of the thieves or the recovery of the stolen property?"

"You shall have the reward, all right," said Flurscheim impatiently.

"I'm not misdoubting your word," said Jessel, "but in cases like this
it's better to 'ave everything in black and white. 'Ave it in black and
white, that's my motto."

Kenly heard the connoisseur give a grunt of disgust, and he smiled. He
could even hear the scratching of a pen on paper. Then Flurscheim's
voice remarked sharply:

"Mind, I'll give nothing to any confederate in the robbery. If you have
had anything to do with it and will make a clean breast of the matter,
I'll do my best for you, but I'm not going to be blackmailed by any
d----d thief."

The detective smiled again at the injured tone of Jessel's reply. "I'm
a respectable man, Mr. Flurscheim, though I am a poor one, an' the
hinformation 'as come to me quite unexpected like. If I was rich I'd be
'appy to tell you all I know for the cause of justice, but being only
poor, I've my old age to think of."

"Well, I only warned you, that's all," grumbled Flurscheim.

"Which there was no need," answered Cornelius with dignity. "And
there's another matter," he added, and now the detective could detect a
note of anxiety in his voice. "There's them as is connected with this
job that won't stick at nothing to get even with them as gives 'em
away, if they has so much as a hint as to who done it. You'll have to
give me your word of honour as a gentleman as you'll not so much as
mention my name, or my life'll not be worth two pennorth of gin."

This time Flurscheim was silent a while before he replied.

"If I don't know your name it is not possible for me to mention it."

"You can easy find out," answered Jessel, "when I tell you what I have
to tell you."

"I promise," replied Flurscheim shortly.

Jessel dropped his voice, but, low as it was, the detective's keen ears
overheard every word of the information which was imparted. He was
thunderstruck at the intelligence that a part of the stolen property
was in the possession of Guy Hora. He could not conceive the motive
which had prompted Jessel to disclose the fact, even if it were true.
He wanted time to arrange his ideas on the subject. But he listened
eagerly to every word that passed. He missed not a word of the long
conversation that ensued when Jessel had imparted the information he
possessed. He drank in all Flurscheim's questions and all the valet's
answers, and was so anxious to lose nothing of what passed that he had
barely time to cast the boat loose and drift astern when he heard them
rise to leave the saloon. Still he presented a picture of perspiring
innocence when he pulled up alongside to take his late lodger back to
the quay.

Cornelius was obviously elated. "Sorry to 'ave kept you so long,
Kenly," he remarked. "But I 'ad to wait for an answer to something. We
must have another drink."

They had it and the detective learned that Cornelius was
expecting to return to town the following day.



CHAPTER XIX

INSPECTOR KENLY REPORTS


Although Cornelius had been entirely unaware of the fact, his late
landlord had arrived at Whitsea by the same train as himself, and had
been keeping a sharp eye on him, and if it were possible, a still
sharper eye on Guy Hora. But Kenly's observation had been unproductive
until the time when he obeyed the impulse to make himself known to
Jessel. He had been impelled to do so by sheer desperation at having
passed, from a professional point of view, one of the most unprofitable
fortnights of his life. He had not anticipated any remarkable
revelations when he had followed Cornelius into the hotel bar, and when
he finally bade his old tenant good-bye, he had no need to force a
spice of heartiness into the greeting.

Directly after Jessel left him he felt the necessity for rearranging
all his theories, but at the same time he was equally alive to the
desirability of getting to work upon the new clue which was in his
possession. There was now nothing to keep him in Whitsea. He had
learned of Guy's intention to return to London the following day, and
he determined to be in town before him. There would be plenty of time
to decide upon the best course to pursue during the journey.

He went into the hotel, packed his bag, and paid his bill
in a desperate hurry, for the hotel omnibus was at the door.

He caught his train and was thankful to find so few people travelling
that he could get a compartment to himself. He could marshal his ideas
better in solitude. Still, arrange them and rearrange them as he might,
he could get no nearer a reasonable explanation of the relationship
of the various parties who had become objects of his suspicion. The
only theory which seemed at all tenable was that the Horas, father and
son, Cornelius Jessel and Captain Marven were all members of a gang
of criminals who operated in perfect safety by reason of the social
position of the principals. But in such case Kenly could not understand
the motive of the elaborate plot by means of which Cornelius had
secured for himself his place in Guy's service. Nor could he comprehend
why Captain Marven's name should have been used in regard to the stock
exchange operations which had followed upon the acquisition of the
knowledge contained in the despatches. To Kenly, that seemed such a
gratuitous piece of folly, as to be entirely unworthy of the audacious
person who had planned and carried out the Flurscheim coup.

Like a wise man, he ceased after a while to trouble himself with
inventing explanations to fit theories. He knew very well that once all
the facts were in his hands an explanation would be easy to find, and
he was anxious to get some additional facts. Was not that the motive
which had made him decide to leave Whitsea in such a hurry? He knew
very well that Guy was not carrying the stolen picture about with him,
and he had learned quite enough about Whitsea Hall to be quite assured
in his own mind that the picture was not likely to be reposing there.
He had, however, become sufficiently acquainted with Lynton Hora's
mode of life from his friend the hall porter of Westminster Mansions,
to warrant the assumption that the Greuze was hidden somewhere in
Lynton Hora's flat. If he could only get an opportunity to verify his
suspicion before any of the persons he suspected were alarmed, he saw
an opportunity of bringing off a coup which would provide a startling
denouement to the sensational Flurscheim burglary. The thought ran
away with him to such an extent that he allowed himself to taste the
sweets of success. He imagined himself reading the references in the
newspapers to "the smart work of that able officer, Detective Inspector
Kenly." He imagined himself listening to the commendations of the Judge
when the prisoners at the bar had been sentenced to various terms of
penal servitude, and---- He awoke to the bustle of Liverpool Street
railway station, limp with perspiration, still undecided as to the best
manner of setting about getting the evidence he needed, and perforce
compelled to leave circumstances to guide his course of action.

He permitted himself the luxury of a cab to Scotland Yard, where he
proposed to deposit his bag and report himself. He had another reason
for calling at headquarters. He foresaw that very shortly the moment
might arrive when he would not be able to deal with the situation
single-handed. If all the parties whom he expected to be implicated
in the two affairs were to be kept under surveillance, he would need
assistance, and he was not quite certain whether that moment had not
already arrived when some such steps were necessary. Then
Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim might at any moment communicate with the
Yard, and Inspector Kenly did not want anyone else to be put on the
job without his knowledge. He knew that as he had previously had the
investigation in hand, if he reported himself back in town he would be
communicated with in the event of any fresh information coming to hand,
even though he was detailed for special service on the Foreign Office
affair, and thereby relieved of the obligation to render daily reports
of his work to his own department.

He was glad that he had determined to report himself, for he found
awaiting him a pressing message from the Permanent Secretary, asking
him to call at the Foreign Office, as the Great Man was anxious to know
the result of his investigations.

Inspector Kenly looked at his watch. The afternoon was young. The
Permanent Secretary could be kept waiting for an hour or two longer.
The detective, leaving his bag behind him, strolled out into the
sun-scorched streets. He had even forgotten that he had eaten no lunch,
so eager was he on his quest. He walked briskly towards Westminster
Mansions, and could have shouted with delight when he observed his old
comrade standing at the open door. "Hello, looking for a breeze," he
remarked.

The porter chuckled.

"If you've been locking any up lately, the sooner you let 'em loose
again the better I shall be pleased," he remarked.

"It looks cooler inside than out here," said Kenly, with meaning.

The porter winked and led the way inside. Two lift
attendants were seated languidly interesting themselves in the cricket
intelligence of the latest evening papers.

Kenly glanced at them while he asked in a low tone: "Is there any
chance of a private chat?"

His old comrade nodded, and after talking for a few moments on the
burning topic of the weather, managed to send both the youths on an
errand. Kenly grunted his relief. Directly he was alone with the porter
he went straight to the point.

"I want to go over Mr. Lynton Hora's flat," he announced abruptly.

The porter gazed at him in silent astonishment.

"Yes, I mean exactly what I say," he continued, "and the sooner I can
do so the better I shall be pleased. I suppose some of your people have
a key?"

The hall porter regained his power of speech. "It can't possibly be
managed, Kenly," he spluttered. "There's nothing I wouldn't do for you
in reason, but----"

Kenly cut him short. "It's got to be done," he remarked decisively.
"I've come to you, because I know I can trust you to say nothing,
and the fewer people who know what I am doing the better I shall be
pleased."

"It can't be done," remarked the hall porter. "It would be as much as
my place is worth."

"Pooh!" said the detective. "It is easy enough to make some excuse. You
can say I'm the electric light man or that I have orders to clean out
the cisterns."

"There ain't no cisterns that want cleaning," objected the hall
porter. "Now if you had come and asked me two days ago there
wouldn't have been any difficulty, but to-day----"

"Why is it impossible to-day?" demanded the detective.

"Well, Mr. Hora and Miss Myra have been away at Scarborough for the
past fortnight, and I could have let you in to their place, but I'm
expecting them to return at any minute now."

"Then we mustn't lose any time talking about it," said Kenly briskly.
"I suppose you have some means of communicating with the flat from
here."

"There's the telephone," said the porter.

"Take me straight up," said Kenly, "and if Mr. Hora should arrive
before I come down again just give two rings at the telephone bell.
I shall have plenty of time to let myself out before Mr. Hora
returns." He caught hold of the porter's arm and hurried him away in
the direction of the lift. Protesting all the while that it would
be impossible and entreating Kenly to postpone his visit to a more
convenient occasion, he yet allowed himself to be carried away by the
detective's impetuosity. He protested while the lift went steadily
upward, he protested even while he inserted a key in the lock, and
Kenly left him outside the door still protesting.

Fortune seemed to be favouring the detective. From previous
conversations he had gained a fairly accurate knowledge of the
geography of the interior of Hora's residence, and he wasted no time
in searching the residential portion of the flat. He went directly
to the door where Hora kept his pictures and his books. But here
he experienced a rebuff. The door was locked, and the lock was a
patent one. Kenly had with him a bunch of skeleton keys, but a
very slight trial proved that the lock was unpickable.

He began to cast around for some other means of gaining access, but he
saw none within the flat. He passed through all the rooms, glancing
round each. He was impressed by the luxury of the furnishing, but
there was nothing which could cause anyone to suspect the occupant of
anything but highly refined tastes. Kenly had just completed his hasty
survey when the telephone bell rang twice.

"D----n!" said the Inspector. He opened the outer door and walked out
into the passage outside. He knew that he must not be seen, and he
hastily descended the flight of stairs to the floor below, and as he
did so the lift passed him ascending upwards. He caught a glimpse of
Hora's face.

Kenly waited until the lift descended. The hall porter himself was in
charge. He stopped the lift. Kenly entered in silence.

"Find what you wanted?" asked the porter curiously.

"No time," grunted the detective. "I must have a look round another
time. If I had only known yesterday what I learned to-day----" He
groaned at the thought of what might be hidden beyond that locked door.
Still he was not disheartened. He had noted the number of the lock and
the name of the maker, and he knew that the next time he called the
locked door would prove no barrier to his investigations. Still, days
might pass before the opportunity he desired would recur, and it was
annoying to feel that opportunity had been lost by so narrow a margin.
He bade his friend good-bye and went away at once to the Foreign Office.

The sky had become overcast and the atmosphere was hotter than ever.
Visions of a long drink, with cool translucent lumps of ice tinkling
against the steamy glass, sorely tempted the detective, but he banished
them, and, perspiring himself, he was at last ushered by a perspiring
attendant into the presence of a perspiring Permanent Secretary who
had wheeled his chair on to a line between the open door and the open
window, and sat there in his shirt sleeves in the pathetic belief that
a draught of cool air might be tempted to pass that way.

"What is it? What is it?" he snapped at the attendant who entered to
announce Inspector Kenly. Then looking up he recognised his visitor
standing at the open door.

"Oh, it's you, Kenly. Come in." The attendant withdrew. "And, yes, you
had better shut the door." He sighed as if he had thereby ordered the
door to be shut on his own salvation.

"Sit down, Inspector, and tell me what you have found out," he added.

He looked round for his cigar case, and not finding it immediately made
confusion of the pile of papers which covered his table.

"I think, Sir Everard, you will find your cigar case in your coat
pocket," observed the detective blandly.

The Permanent Secretary smiled as he thrust his hand into the breast
pocket of his discarded coat.

"The heat always makes me irritable," he apologised. "No man ought to
work when the thermometer reaches the eighties." He selected a cigar.
"By the way," he remarked, "by what process of reasoning did you arrive
at the deduction that my cigar case was in my pocket?"

"I saw the corner of it sticking out," remarked the detective equably.

"H--m," said the Permanent Secretary, laughing, "the proper use of the
eyes may on occasion be more valuable than any amount of deduction."

He lit his cigar and stretched himself lazily in his chair.

"Now fire away, Kenly. I can see that you have something to tell me
about those stolen despatches."

Without unnecessary beating about the bush Kenly began the result of
his investigations. The narration did not take long, for, though he had
already spent a month on the investigation, the facts he had discovered
could be described in a very few words. But few as those facts were
they were sufficiently startling to make the Permanent Secretary forget
the heat.

"By Jove!" he remarked, when Kenly had finished. "And I would have
pledged my life on Captain Marven's absolute honour. Yet, from what you
have told me, he appears to be hand-in-glove with a gang of thieves,
one of them living in his own house and likely at any moment to become
engaged to his daughter."

"Certainly appearances are very much against him," remarked Kenly
cautiously, "but I never trust to appearances myself. I have seen
too many cases, where perfectly innocent persons have been on the
most intimate terms with scoundrels, to allow that one fact to weigh
with me. If it was only a question of the burglary, I should expect
Captain Marven to be the next victim of the gang, and it is only the
fact that it seems impossible for the contents of the despatches to
have become known to the Horas without Marven's assistance which
leads me to suspect him with the rest of the crowd."

The Permanent Secretary puffed meditatively at his cigar.

"Things look very black against Marven," he said. "Very black indeed,"
he repeated, after a lengthy pause; then he asked, "Who are these
Horas?" Kenly shook his head.

"I should like to know their history myself," he answered. "All I have
heard hitherto is that the elder man has occupied a first-class flat
in Westminster for the past ten years at a rent of three hundred and
fifty pounds a year, and passes as a very retired gentleman indeed. He
spends only about six months of the year in London, and they say he
has estates in Italy. That may or may not be the case, but, anyhow,
he calls himself the Commandatore, which I'm told is an Italian title
given him by the King of Italy for something or other he's done over
there. The young one was at Oxbridge and made quite a name amongst his
set, and lived at home till a few weeks ago, when he took some chambers
in the Albany. Then there's a girl named Myra, who passes as the old
man's daughter, though there's reason to think that she's only an
adopted child."

"What are you proposing to do?" asked the Permanent Secretary, after
another pause.

Inspector Kenly coughed. "That depends----" he remarked, and
paused. "That depends on circumstances. You see, Sir Everard, my
hand may be forced before I shall have obtained all the evidence I
want. That communication which has been made to Mr. Flurscheim may
lead at any moment to the younger Hora's arrest, and then
good-bye to the hope of obtaining any more evidence. What I was going
to suggest was that you should allow me to continue to investigate your
affair. It will leave me more free to look after things than if I have
to turn in a report to headquarters. I'm so afraid," he added in a
burst of confidence, "that they might put some man on to the job that
would bungle it. I've got an idea as to where the Greuze is hidden,
but I know very well that at the first hint of anything going wrong it
would disappear, or be destroyed."

"Then you think that the same people who brought off the Flurscheim
burglary are responsible for the despatch leakage?" asked the Permanent
Secretary.

"Certain of it," declared Inspector Kenly.

"But if you continue to work on my business, isn't what you fear likely
to come to pass? Will not another man be put on to the picture robbery?
Flurscheim will hardly keep silence."

"I'll see after that," answered Kenly. "From what I know of Mr.
Flurscheim he won't let the grass grow under his feet. He is probably
on the way to town now."

"Then what becomes of your plans?" asked the Permanent Secretary. He
could see that the detective had not revealed all that was in his mind.

"Mr. Flurscheim wants to get his Greuze back undamaged," said the
detective slowly, "and he also wants to punish the man who stole it. I
shall see him directly he arrives in town, and I think I can make it
clear to him that he had better say nothing until I consider the time
ripe for action."

"There's only one thing more," remarked the Permanent
Secretary. "Suppose I think it necessary to ask Captain Marven for an
explanation?"

The detective jumped to his feet with a look of horror on his face.
"Good heavens! Sir Everard," he exclaimed, "you would spoil everything.
You won't do it?"

The Permanent Secretary laughed.

"You may make your mind easy, Kenly," he observed. "I'm
too much of a sportsman for that, I hope."



CHAPTER XX

GUY'S LAST THEFT


While Inspector Kenly was hastening to London events at Whitsea were
shaping themselves to the bewilderment of a number of the inhabitants
of that pleasant little yachting resort. There was electricity in the
air afflicting everyone with a vague disquietude. Meriel, thinking
over Guy's wild outburst after his passionate declaration of love,
felt a strange dread of what the day should bring forth. Guy, fearing
the result of the confession he had promised to make, could see no
sun behind the gathering clouds. Mrs. Marven, noticing a new-born
constraint between the two young people, began to think that she had
misread the signs which had seemed confidently to predict a love-match.
Captain Marven, less dubious on this point, felt only vaguely uneasy.
He therefore decided that the electricity was not produced by mental
disturbance, but was purely atmospheric.

"There is thunder in the air," he declared, and counselled the members
of his household not to get far away from home.

But on the physical horizon there was no cloud. Guy, wishing to be
alone once more with Meriel, proposed that they should bring the
_Witch_ home, and Meriel, fearless of the sun and longing for an
end to her suspense, acceded to the suggestion.

After an early lunch they started. The heat was
greater than ever, but Guy was heedless of it. He pulled at the oars
as if physical exertion was a panacea for a troubled mind. Meriel,
watching him from the stern as the dingey cut the water, rejoiced in
his strength. At least her lover was a man.

She wondered greatly what was on his mind. She was no petticoated
ignoramus of the world. She knew that men were sometimes caught in
feminine entanglements, and were sometimes even ashamed of their folly.
It might be that Guy had been so caught, and felt in honour bound to
acquaint her with his difficulty. She did not want to hear. It was
quite sufficient that he should desire that she should know the worst
of him. When he spoke she would stop him. She was quite sure, even as
she had said on the previous evening, that nothing that had happened in
the past could make any difference.

The _Witch_ rode to her anchor, with her stern pointing to the
sea, for the tide was still ebbing when they reached her side.

Meriel felt Guy's hand tremble as it clasped hers to assist her aboard.
She knew that the time had come when Guy would speak. She could have
cried aloud to him to remain forever silent, for a fear came upon her
that it was no youthful indiscretion which her companion proposed to
reveal, but something vital to their joint happiness, something searing
to their love. She put the thought aside. Her love was her life: more,
for it would endure after life itself had departed.

"Are you listening, Meriel?" asked Guy a little later.

He had set the mainsail, and in the shadow it
cast on deck he had arranged cushions for her.
She looked up at him in mute answer.

"Meriel, don't look at me, your eyes will make a coward of me," he
said. "Look out on the horizon. Do you see the white sail yonder? That
boat is coming on the first of the tide. By the time she reaches us you
will have no wish to look upon me again."

She denied the statement vehemently.

"I know what I have to tell you," he answered steadily. "But first I
should like you to know something of the beliefs in which I was brought
up."

He told her first of Lynton Hora's enmity with the world, told her
of his philosophy, of his conception of mankind as a fortuitous
aggregation of warring atoms, each hypocritically desirous of
concealing his real intent from his neighbours.

"This I believed till I met you, Meriel," he said.

"But if that is all----" Her voice died away. Looking at him, she saw
his face had hardened.

"It is not all." He told her of his early training, of the practical
exposition of Hora's philosophy.

Meriel no longer looked at her companion's face. She began to feel
horror growing upon her. She gazed now at the white sail. It was
perceptibly nearer.

He carried the story of his life on to the point where he left the
University, told her how, merely in obedience to his father's advice,
he had not, during those days, practised the principles in which he had
believed. Hope began to grow again in her heart. She murmured, "Go on,"
eagerly.

He told her of his earnest desire to win the approbation of his father,
depicted for her the glamour which the adventurous aspect of his
profession presented. Abruptly he told her of his first enterprise.

Meriel's heart almost ceased to beat. The white sails of the oncoming
boat fascinated her. They were very near now.

"That is not all, yet," he said. "There is one other thing you must
know." Paltering not at all, excusing himself in no way, he told her
the history of the stolen despatches.

He had not looked at her at all during the narration, but now he
ventured one glance. Her face was unnaturally pale.

"You know now why I could not ask you to marry me," he said. "I cannot
ask you to marry a thief. Yet, I want you to believe that, thief though
I am, I could not steal your love. You must believe that of me. It is
true." She heard him, but she made no answer. The boat she had been
watching had crept up until it was level. It passed. She shivered in
spite of the heat.

Guy had moved quietly away. She saw that the _Witch_ had swung
on the tide. She watched him weigh the anchor and get the boat under
way with a curious fear in her heart; a fear for herself. In looks, in
bearing, in his manner, he was every inch a man, a man that she loved.
But he was a thief, the thief who had treacherously robbed the man who
had been a father to her, a thief for whom the police were searching, a
thief who might any day stand in the dock as a felon.

"Guy is a thief! a thief! a thief!" She had to repeat the words to
herself again and again lest she should forget. Yes, he had been quite
right, she could never marry a thief. She supposed that she ought
to be thankful to him for having told her before she had married
him. She would have married him if he had not told her.
But he was wrong in saying that he could not steal her love. He had
stolen it. If she had known from the first she would never have given
her heart to him. But he had come and taken it away, and now that he
had given it back to her----

Guy had come to the tiller. She roused herself and looked into his face.

"It is not true that you did not steal my love," she said. "You took my
heart from me, and you have broken it, and now you bring me back the
pieces and say you did not steal it." She spoke dispassionately, as one
who would argue the point.

Guy wondered at the tone until he saw the dazed look in the girl's eyes.

"Meriel," he cried, "for God's sake don't look at me like that. Say
something, anything, if only it were to curse me. I had to tell you,
even though I knew that the telling would end my life's happiness."

"I had no reason to think that you were anything but an honourable man.
I had never mixed with any but honourable men, and so I suppose I was
deceived," she answered wearily. "I don't suppose I ought to blame you."

She turned away, and going forward leaned upon the staff-rack where she
was hidden from his sight by the intervening sail. Tears had come to
her relief at last.

The boat drifted on with the tide. The sky was becoming overcast and
away in the north a heavy bunch of clouds was gathering. A sudden
breeze ruffled the surface of the water, and died away as swiftly as
it arose. A puff filled the sails. It came from the south, another
puff followed it from another quarter, heading the _Witch_ so that
the sails flapped wildly. Guy had barely brought her up to the wind
before it veered again to the south. The _Witch_ leaned over under the
pressure, and, gathering way, set the foam swirling under her bows.
As the squall strengthened the _Witch_ began to talk, and Guy cast
an anxious look aloft. The squall died away and once more the boat
drifted. But the ten minutes' breeze had brought them near home. They
were amongst the other boats moored in the river opposite the quay.

Meriel had not moved from her place forward. Her tears had ceased
to flow. In a few more minutes she would have said good-bye to Guy
and to love. She looked up. The _Witch_ was drifting past Mr.
Hildebrand Flurscheim's yacht, and the connoisseur was on the deck.
Meriel recognised him at the same moment that she was recognised. "Good
afternoon, Miss Challys. Look out for the storm, Mr. Hora," cried
Flurscheim.

Was there a spice of mockery in his voice, or was it her fancy?
Meriel could not be certain. There had been a smile on Flurscheim's
face. Supposing he suspected that Guy was the man who had robbed
him of his treasure, Guy would be arrested. She knew in that
moment that all that he had told her had made no difference to
her affection. She knew that she loved him, thief as he was, that
she would do anything, make any sacrifice, to rescue him from
the result of his misdeeds. She left her post and went aft to
Guy's side. A distant flash of lightning illuminated Flurscheim's
face. He was still smiling as he gazed in their direction. She
wondered whether Guy had observed the Jew's expression. If so,
he had paid no heed to it. His whole attention was given
to the boat, though now and again he cast an anxious glance at the sky.

"Here comes the breeze again," he muttered. He gave a sigh of relief as
the sails filled. "Five minutes of it, and we shall escape the storm,"
he said. The _Witch_ heeled over till her rail was awash and the
foam creamed away in their wake.

Meriel looked back at Flurscheim. He waved his hand, and even as he
waved it he overbalanced and fell forward into the water. She gave
utterance to a sharp cry of alarm.

"What is it?" shouted Guy, for the rushing of the wind made ordinary
speech impossible to be heard.

"Flurscheim is overboard," she gasped.

Without a moment's hesitation Guy put the tiller down, and, as the
_Witch_ came up into the wind, he glanced in the direction to
which Meriel pointed. A dark object was being borne swiftly along on
the tide. Guy kept the tiller down until the boat was before the wind,
and giving the mainsail more sheet, the _Witch_ scudded back in
the direction she had come. But the dark object had disappeared.

"Can you manage the tiller?" shouted Guy.

Meriel nodded.

"Bring her up into the wind the moment I tell you," he said. He cast
loose the painter of the dingey towing aft, and stood with it in his
hand, watching patiently. The dark object reappeared not a dozen yards
away. He had already kicked off his boots. He dropped the painter.

"Now," he shouted to Meriel, and took a header
straight into the tossing water.

Guy had not trusted to Meriel in vain. When he rose to the surface and
shook the water out of his eyes he saw that the yacht was lying-to
not half a cable's length away. He had barely time to appreciate the
fact when the object he had dived for floated towards him. He caught
a glimpse of a despairing face, and the next moment he had grasped
Flurscheim by the collar and was striking out strongly in the direction
of the dingey, drifting, like themselves, with the tide, only a few
yards away. Flurscheim had struggled when Guy had first gripped him,
but his struggles had soon ceased. Guy got him to the side of the
boat, but could not hoist him aboard. He threw one arm over the stern
and hung on, supporting Flurscheim with the other hand. He had not to
wait very long. The accident had been observed from the deck of the
connoisseur's yacht, and two of her crew, tumbling hastily into their
own dingey, came swiftly to the rescue. Flurscheim was hauled aboard;
Guy followed, and as he bent over the Jew his eyes opened, and a glance
of recognition came into them.

"Not much the worse for your ducking, eh, Mr. Flurscheim?" asked Guy.

The connoisseur struggled into a sitting position. He held out his hand
mutely. Guy took it for a moment in his, then turned to the men who had
come to their assistance.

He pointed to the drifting dingey. "If you'll get hold of that,
I'll pull myself aboard," he said quietly. "Mr. Flurscheim will be
all right." He was obeyed, and a minute later he stepped aboard the
_Witch_, and, once more taking the tiller, brought her up to the wind
and steered for home.

Meriel said nothing--what could she say? To her Guy's action was
heroic. His coolness, the absolute confidence with which he had set
about the work of rescue, the ease with which he had performed the
task he had set himself, revealed qualities which filled her with
admiration. Yet the man who possessed these qualities was a thief. No,
there was nothing she could say.

The _Witch_ flew homewards, and the Hall came into view.

"Will you take the tiller again, Miss Challys?" he asked, as the boat
neared the buoy.

She took it from him mechanically. He went forward, hauled in
the foresail, and, as the boat came about, dropped the peak. The
_Witch_ drove leisurely on to her moorings, and in a couple of
minutes she was fast. There was no time to waste. Meriel hastened to
his assistance. She worked side by side in stowing away the canvas. The
storm held off, though the clouds had nearly covered the sky by the
time everything had been made snug aboard.

"Come," said Guy, as he drew the dingey alongside. Meriel stepped into
the boat, and a dozen strokes took them to the bank.

"We shall just manage to get home before the storm breaks," he
continued, as he handed her ashore, and, following, made the painter
fast to the guide rope.

He was right in his estimate, though they had to hasten their
footsteps to gain shelter, for almost as soon as they had reached the
top of the wall the lightning blazed out, and the thunder crashed
at the same moment. Meriel had been on the verge of hysteria. The
atmospheric tumult had come at a time when her nerves were
shattered; she wanted to shriek, but her muscles seemed to fail her.

"A near thing," said Guy. The equability of his voice gave Meriel
renewed confidence. She looked up at his face and wondered that it was
flushed with delight. She stumbled, Guy's hand steadied her. He caught
her up in his arms, and carried her onwards. She felt a delicious sense
of safety, and immediately the thought followed--he is a thief. They
came to the lawn gate, and he set her on her feet.

She forgot the storm. She laid her hand on his arm. "Tell me it is
untrue," she cried.

He took both her hands in his. "I love you, Meriel," he said simply. "I
wish I could say, 'Yes, it is untrue,' but I cannot." He took her arm,
and hurried her across the lawn until they stood beneath the porch.
There, with one piteous glance, she left him without another word.

His eyes followed her along the passage, then he turned and went out
into the storm. He was the only living thing abroad, and he rejoiced
in the solitude. He had no fear of the revolting elements. Their mood
suited his. He would have welcomed the flash which should scar his
body, even as the lightning of his emotions had seared his soul. He
had told himself that his story would kill the love that he had seen
springing up in Meriel's heart, but all the while he had hoped that
it would survive the stroke he would deal at the root. How much he
had hoped, he had not realised until he saw the anguish on her face,
until he saw that she had shrunk from him. He could have borne anger,
taunts even, but silence--the silence of contempt, for so he translated
Meriel's attitude--that filled him with bitterness. There was no
hope for him. He was overwhelmed with youth's Byronic despair. Heedless
of his path, he went onward. The thunder crashed, later the rain fell,
but he pressed onwards blindly.

The awakening came when the storm, passing away, gave place to a golden
sunset. Guy found himself far away from sight of human habitation, with
the sea on one hand and on the other the saltings stretching away to
the horizon. The passing of the storm brought no renewal of hope to
him. He was wearied mentally and physically. He knew the direction in
which Whitsea lay, and he turned his face towards it.

It was dark by the time he arrived at the Hall, and he heard the dinner
gong as he entered the door. He did not obey his first impulse to shirk
facing the inmates of the house. He threw off his rain-sodden clothes,
and put on conventional dinner attire so swiftly that he was ready
before the second gong sounded.

"Meriel will not be down," said Mrs. Marven, as he entered the
drawing-room. "The storm has given her a headache. I am so sorry, as it
is your last evening."

Guy could only murmur something unintelligible while he told himself
bitterly that the girl would not even look upon him.



CHAPTER XXI

EXPECTATION


Lynton Hora felt more uneasiness than he would have acknowledged at
Guy's failure to communicate with him. Nor did the daily reports
with which Cornelius Jessel supplied him do anything to allay his
disquietude. These would have furnished entertainment for the
Commandatore had they related to anybody but Guy. Indeed, the
shadow-man's matter-of-fact chronicle of the day-by-day doings of a
young man in love would have been food for mirth to the mildest cynic.

"Took G.'s shaving water at seven. D----d me because he scraped himself
shaving. Said I hadn't stropped the razors properly. As soon as he
was up he went into the garden and helped Miss Challys syringe the
rose trees. They went into breakfast together. After breakfast he sent
me down to the village to see if some music he had ordered for Miss
Challys had arrived. When I got back, found he had gone out in the boat
with Miss Challys for a sail. Did not come back until dinner-time.
Saw them come home. They had been alone together all day. Heard the
Captain say to Mrs. M., 'We shall not have to wait very long now for an
announcement.' She answered, 'They hardly seem to remember that there's
anybody else in the world....'"

But Lynton Hora was not amused by the report as he would have been
had Guy taken him into his confidence respecting what was obviously
an affair of the heart. He knew Guy well enough to be aware that he
was always in deadly earnest in any pursuit in which he was engaged,
and he dreaded the influence which a pure, straightforward woman
might have upon him. If Meriel Challys had been the sort of woman who
amused herself by luring a man on to a declaration, he would have been
delighted at Guy's infatuation, the lesson would have been good for
him. But he could not lull his forebodings by any such narcotic.

He saw Guy drifting away from him, throwing overboard the whole cargo
of criminal philosophy which had been so carefully provided for him,
at the bidding of a mere girl. He had no fear for himself. Guy might
recant the faith in which he had been brought up, but Lynton Hora did
not for a moment imagine that the recantation would be accompanied by
any treachery towards himself. Loyalty was a distinguishing feature of
Guy's nature. He would never reveal anything which would injure the man
whom he looked upon as father. The Commandatore felt perfectly safe on
that point, so long as Guy should not learn, nor even suspect, that
he, Lynton Hora, was not his father--the Commandatore did not pursue
the thought, though he foresaw the possibility and had provided what
he thought would be a complete defence against any trouble to himself
through the awakening of such a suspicion. Lynton Hora left as little
as possible to chance, and ordinary caution had led him to anticipate
the possibility of the discovery of Guy's real parentage, even though
the possibility was of the remotest.

But it was not only the question of danger to himself which
troubled him. It was the thought that Guy would no longer be his son.
All those years he had spent in moulding the boy's mind had not been
without effect on Lynton Hora. Unknowingly he had given away what
he did not know that he possessed. It was in reality a real human
affection for his foster child which made him so perturbed. Cold as
he had always been in his outward demeanour, he had learned, when Guy
had departed to chambers of his own, that without him life had somehow
suddenly ceased to interest him. The fanatical priest rearing the
victim for sacrifice upon the altar of an unappeasable deity suddenly
realised that he had learned to love the proposed victim. Yet, rather
than he should fall under the influence of the man whom he looked upon
as his bitterest enemy, he would have sacrificed the victim even if he
should eternally regret the oblation.

He did not, it is true, anticipate such necessity. He allowed for
Guy's youth. Youth was ever impressionable and romantic, changing in
its fancy, and ever amenable to the mutable feminine. Once let him
be removed from the presence of Meriel Challys and Hora thought that
Guy might be weaned from his obvious infatuation. Indeed, there was a
probability that his romantic imaginings might be turned to account.
The young man, floundering out of his depths in the quicksands of
romantic imaginings, might be easily captured by the wiles of a really
clever woman.

Hora set himself earnestly to work to tutor Myra in the part he
destined her to play in the recalling of Guy. He did so entirely by
suggestion. He had taken her away from London, telling her that she
needed sea air to restore the roses of her complexion, if she wished
to be beautiful in Guy's eyes when she returned to town. Then,
when away, he continued, day by day, hour by hour almost, to sting her
emotions. His sneers were all directed at the virtuous woman; never
had Myra found him so entertaining. He excited her imagination by the
books he brought her to read, tales of passionate surrender, memoirs of
the courts of bygone centuries, when love and lechery were synonymous
terms. He talked to her much of Guy, dwelling on his physical
attributes, declaring that he was as other men. If Myra realised any
intention in his words, she gave no sign of doing so. Then one day,
soon after leaving town, Hora gave a hint that perhaps already some
rival was claiming Guy's kisses. At that suggestion Myra's eyes flashed
dangerously. Hora noted the glance.

[Illustration: "You will take me home again."]

"There's only one perfect revenge upon a rival," Hora remarked, "and
that is to steal away the rival's lover."

"You don't mean to tell me that Guy----" said Myra, heedless of the
suggestion. She could not utter the words which would have voiced her
fear that Guy had already given his love to another.

"I tell you that there is a chit of a girl in the country who, if
she knew as much as you do, would have taken Guy from us long ago.
Fortunately she is a fool, or Guy would be lost; as it is, Myra, your
chance has not yet passed."

She hoped not, and though she doubted, Hora's confidence reassured her.

That same afternoon, as they passed a stationer's shop, with a window
full of photographs of actresses, Hora paused and directed her
attention to the portrait of a flagrantly décolleté woman.

"You have a finer figure than that woman," he remarked.

Myra blushed, and they passed on without another word. Later on Myra
returned to the shop alone and obtained the photograph.

After dinner she let fall an observation that her wardrobe needed
replenishing. Hora grumbled, but she teased him into giving her a
cheque. His face was perfectly grave. Next day she sent the photograph
and the cheque, accompanied by a long letter of instructions, to Madame
Gabrielle, her London dressmaker. Three days later Madame Gabrielle
arrived in Scarborough and Myra gave the whole morning to the tedious
business of fitting. Hora asked no questions.

The day came for their return to town. Myra was feverishly anxious to
be off, fearful lest Guy should be back before them, fearful lest he
should not come back at all. He had not written once, either to her or
to Hora during the whole fortnight. Hora did his best to mitigate her
obvious anxiety.

"No doubt we shall find a letter waiting for us on our return," he said.

His surmise proved correct. The letter which Jessel had posted for Guy
that same morning at Whitsea was lying on the table in the entrance
hall. Myra seized it eagerly. Her colour came and went as Hora opened
it deliberately.

"What does he say? When is he coming?" she cried.

For answer Hora read the letter aloud.

"I am returning to town to-morrow, after spending a fortnight with
Captain Marven, and I have something important to tell you. I am afraid
you won't like what I have to say, but I cannot help myself, even if
it should lead to a parting of our ways. Yes, I fear it has come to
that. I will come in to-morrow after dinner, if you will be at home."

That was all. Hora's voice became harsh as he read, and as he finished
he crumbled the letter in his hand, and threw it aside.

"A parting of the ways. It has come to that, has it?" he muttered. His
face grew dark and his eyes flashed dangerously. "A parting of the
ways, and all for the sake of a milk-and-water country girl. What do
you say to that, Myra?"

He turned suddenly upon his companion. He was almost alarmed at what
he saw. Her face was deathlike in its pallor, and in her pale face her
dark eyes flashed with unnatural brightness. She reeled slightly and
grasped with both hands at a table to steady herself. He did not press
the question. He led her to a chair, turned swiftly to a tantalus, and,
pouring brandy into a glass, held it to her lips.

"You fool," he said, and his tone was kindly, though his words were
rough. "You fool, to set such store by any piece of mere frail
humanity. Drink this."

Myra obeyed the command. Gradually the colour came back to her cheeks.
She sat up, but her mouth drooped at the corners, there was despair in
her eyes.

"I could not help but give him my love," she said protestingly, "and he
will have none of it."

Hora turned aside, and paced the room irresolutely. He seated himself
at a writing-table, scribbled rapidly, and, when he had finished,
brought the note over to Myra. She read it listlessly.

"Dear Guy," Hora had written, "you are a most amazing person, and I
haven't the slightest idea as to the meaning of your melodramatic
phrases. You know you may always please yourself as to anything you
choose to do. If you do not like your profession, by all means change
it for any of the legalised forms of plunder, but, even if this is in
your thoughts, you need not worry over it. A man has an inalienable
right to please himself, and I shall not think less of you for making
your own decision, even if that decision is one which destroys all my
hopes of a successor. You will find I can discuss the matter quite
philosophically, but come before dinner to-morrow night, and we will
have a quiet chat over a cigar afterwards. If our ways are to lie
apart, you need not quite desert us. Perhaps you might even convince
me, not, perhaps, that my calling is not as honourable as any other
parasitic method of living, but that I might do well at my age to
retire from the active practice of my profession. Dinner at 8.30.
Yours, Lynton Hora."

Myra read the letter, but the perusual brought no hope to her.
Hora folded it, placed it in an envelope, sealed and stamped it
deliberately. He rang the bell and ordered the letter to be posted.
Myra still sat silent. Then Hora said to her quietly:

"You will have to entertain Guy alone to-morrow, Myra. I shall be
called away on important business."

"I cannot, indeed I cannot," she cried.

He continued deaf to her protest. "It is your only chance, Myra.
To-morrow night you must win him or lose him forever. You must not
fail----"

He turned and left the room, leaving the threat unspoken.

She sat there long after he departed.

Her only chance! In one or two brief hours she must bind Guy to her
indissolubly. Hora had taught her, without ever once uttering a word
which might offend, how she could win him if she so chose. He had
insisted upon Guy's chivalrous nature. He had insisted, too, that the
most Puritanical of men could be fascinated by an appeal to the senses.
Thoughts came to her which set her cheeks burning. But she could not
banish those thoughts. She remained motionless until a maid appeared to
ask if she could see Madame Gabrielle.

"Yes, at once," she answered. "Bring her to my room."

Her listlessness had entirely departed as she rose and hurried after
the maid. A minute later the dressmaker was ushered into her presence.
The woman was a voluble specimen of her type, and as she unpacked the
box she descanted freely on the beauties of the "creation" she had
brought with her. She became more voluble than ever when Myra was robed
in the new frock.

"Ah, but it is ravishing; mademoiselle's figure is magnificent, and the
tint suits mademoiselle's complexion and colouring to perfection. Oh,
but it is a pity mademoiselle is in London. Only in Paris could such
a work of art be appreciated. Ah, mademoiselle has the right idea of
dress. It is a pleasure to make for her."

With deft fingers she fluttered round, settling a tuck here, smoothing
a fold there. "Let mademoiselle observe for herself," said the woman.

Myra surveyed herself in the full-length mirror. Madame Gabrielle was
right. Her skin was dazzlingly fair against the dull rose tint of the
fabric. Cleverly, too, had the modiste followed the lines of her
customer's figure. Not a single graceful curve had been hidden. Yet
Myra felt no sense of nudity. All outlines were softened by careful
arrangement of chiffon.

Myra turned to the woman. "You have carried out my idea exactly. I am
very pleased," she said.

Madame Gabrielle beamed with gratification. She began again to express
her pleasure in gowning such a perfect figure. Myra cut her short. She
wanted to be alone. When the woman had departed, she approached the
mirror again and looked steadily at the reflection. Taking up a hand
glass, she moved backwards and forwards, up and down, posturing in a
score of different ways. Then suddenly she flung herself down upon her
knees by the side of a chair and threw her arms in the air with a cry
of despair. Something gave way in the new frock, but she paid no heed.

"Oh, Guy, Guy!" she wailed. But the cry was hardly uttered before it
was checked. She bit her lip, and looked again at the mirror to gather
courage.

She blushed. A string had broken, and the bodice had slipped. Suppose
that Guy had answered her call. Her heart beat almost as tumultuously
as if he had been present. She made a pin do service for the broken
string, and, smiling again, went in search of Hora.

She found him in his study with a volume of the "Arabian Nights" open
before him, but with his eyes gazing into vacancy. He did not glance
at her as she entered. She moved gracefully across the room until she
stood before him, then she asked simply:

"Shall I do, Commandatore?"

Her voice was low, alluring, with a spice of mockery in it.
Hora looked up impatiently, and he caught his breath. His impatience
vanished. A smile passed over his face. Then he looked critically at
his _vis-à-vis_, so critically that Myra flushed rosily and half
turned away.

"Do?" said Hora. "If I had lived in the fifteenth century, I should
have declared that you had been taking counsel with the devil."

"Perhaps I have," she replied, but the mockery was still in her voice.

"I believe you could bewitch even me, if you chose," he said as he
looked again. "You would serve for a picture of temptation incarnate."

She laughed happily, and her eyes shone softly.

"It is for Guy," she answered, "all for Guy."

Lynton Hora recovered his wonted mood.

"Lucky young devil," he remarked cynically. His mood changed again.
"Look here, Myra," he cried. "You and Guy must be married as soon as it
can be managed. No, you need not interrupt me. You can keep him here
until I return, and a special license can be obtained. When he leaves
this flat it must be only with his bride. I will make all arrangements,
and"--he paused before continuing,--"afterwards, you shall have your
wish. Guy shall engage in no more dangerous enterprises. We will sign
an armistice with the world."

Myra gave a cry of delight. She seized Hora's hand, pressing it between
her own two palms. "You are too good to me, Commandatore," she said
earnestly. "So good to me, and yet I fear. I--I don't want the license.
I only want Guy to love me; if--if he doesn't----"

Tears stood in her eyes, and a sob choked her utterance.

"Guy cannot but love you," answered Hora, and he truly
believed what he said. "No man in his senses could reject such devotion
as yours, when once he is aware of its depths."

"But--I--I cannot tell him," she said helplessly, dropping her hand.

Hora looked at her curiously.

"No?" he said. "There will be plenty of time for that afterwards.
First you have to win him." He caught one of her hands in his own, and
something of his own virile power seemed to be transmitted to her.
"You are irresistible in some moods, Myra, and, if I were forty years
younger and could be foolish again, I would take care that Guy never
came near you. If you wish, you may be as certain of winning him as
that to-morrow will dawn." His tone denoted absolute conviction.

Myra drew away her hand.

"Good-night, Commandatore," she said. She gave him her cheek, and he
brushed it lightly with his lips before she turned away and left him
without another word.

"Good heavens!" he muttered to himself, when the door closed behind
her. "If I were forty years younger----" He smiled cynically, and added:

"I don't think we have come to the parting
of the ways just yet, Guy."



CHAPTER XXII

TEMPTATION


The last evening Guy had spent at Whitsea had seemed interminable.
Both his host and hostess had observed his depression, but tactfully
took no notice. Then when Guy was alone with Captain Marven he had
braced himself to give what explanation he could. He spoke of his
love for Meriel--Captain Marven was sympathetic. He spoke of its
hopelessness--Captain Marven wondered. Haltingly he revealed that
he had considered it his duty to disclose facts concerning himself
which had placed an insuperable barrier between them. The initial
embarrassment in finding speech once surmounted, he had no difficulty
in making clear to his host that it would be best that he should depart
by the earliest possible train. Captain Marven was greatly disturbed.
Guy's veiled allusions were without meaning to him. He even feared that
the young man's brain was disordered, though his demeanour was calm
enough to reassure him. He begged Guy to confide in him fully. Guy
longed to do so, but refrained. The thought of his father restrained
him. Marven was compelled to agree that it was best for him to depart
without further speech with Meriel.

So Guy left Whitsea without even seeing Meriel again. He had
hungered for another glance from her eyes, another touch of her
fingers, but neither had been vouchsafed to him.

He left early in the morning, and only Captain Marven bade him adieu.
The Captain's hearty handshake was comforting, even though Guy felt, as
the warm grasp closed on his, that it was given under false pretences.
He loathed himself more than ever at that moment, and there crept into
his mind the determination to make amends.

But how? Guy could think of no way, for there was his father to be
considered. He would have liked to say to Captain Marven: "You must not
take my hand. I have obtained your friendship under false pretences. I
have robbed you of your trust. Now I ask you to name the punishment."
That would be manly, but it would be treachery to Hora.

Guy groaned in his spirit. One thing he was determined upon. In
the future the son should not tread in the steps of his father.
Hora's arguments might convince his understanding, but they would
not bear the test of practical application. The world was not the
agglomeration of warring atoms he had been taught to believe.
Honesty was not a pious hypocrisy with which men deluded themselves.
A courage for the forbidden was not the greatest of all virtues.
Meriel had shattered all these old beliefs. He knew that they
were gone forever, that in the future Lynton Hora's predatory
philosophy would cease to appeal to him. But he had nothing to take
the place of these shattered principles. Nothing but the memory of
a girl who, loving him, thrust him away in horror that he should
be a thief. He loathed himself because he should be an object of
loathing to her. He could not bear the idea that his needs should be
supplied by means which awakened her to such disgust. At
least it was within his power to alter that. He could go out into the
world and make his own way honestly. If he could not win Meriel, at
least he could prove himself worthy of her. But that would necessitate
his cutting himself adrift from Hora entirely. Well, he would pay that
price gladly. He would waste no time before doing so. Yet, though he
arrived early in town, he did not go at once to Westminster Mansions.

He found Hora's letter awaiting him at his own abode, and was
surprised, even touched, by its contents. Hora seemed to have guessed
at the upheaval his opinions had undergone, and to be prepared to
meet him halfway. Guy was relieved at the thought. He had dreaded
his father's gibes more than aught else, and he wondered what should
have happened to have so suddenly made the Commandatore malleable to
a mere suggestion--he who had always been so fiercely insistent upon
his right to dominate the lives of his children. Guy puzzled for hours
for an answer. He did not distrust Hora. The Commandatore had not been
accustomed to deceive him.

Thus preyed upon by a whole host of conflicting thoughts, Guy passed
the day, and at last the hour arrived when he was due at Westminster
Mansions. He was averse to accepting Hora's hospitality, to sit at
the table supplied by means he had learnt to detest. In a few hours
his thoughts had travelled a tremendous distance. He was not of the
type which palters with convictions. Just as whole-heartedly as he
had adopted Hora's teachings, he was prepared to tread the path of
rectitude. But he felt that he would not be at peace with himself until
he had divested himself of every vestige of the products of his
evil deeds. Yet, though the acceptance of Hora's invitation savoured of
compromise, he realised that it would be ungracious to refuse. Hora had
been good to him, even if misguided. There was no need that they should
part in anger.

It was with the sense of a prisoner under sentence of death that he
dressed. Cornelius might have been a warder assisting him on the
execution morn. It was for the last time. To-morrow he would be quite
alone. He set his teeth grimly and fought against the feeling of
depression as he drove to Westminster Mansions. His mind was abnormally
active. He observed details that would have escaped his attention under
ordinary circumstances. He saw that the hall porter looked at him
curiously, and wondered why. The deferential welcome of the lift man
irritated him.

Arrived at the flat he felt in his pocket for the key of the outer
door which Lynton Hora had insisted upon his retaining, and he was
annoyed to find that he had left it at his chambers. He had intended to
leave it behind him. He rang, and the man who opened the door seemed
surprised.

"Is my father in?" he asked, as he handed the man his hat.

"No, sir," the man answered.

Guy paused irresolutely. He himself was late. "Won't he be back for
dinner?" he asked. Before he could reply the door of the drawing-room
opened.

"Is that you, Guy? How is it that you troubled to ring? Have you lost
your key?"

Myra came, with outstretched hands, to greet him. "Welch, take Mr.
Guy's coat, and we will have dinner served at once," she said to the
man, and, turning to Guy, she continued rapidly:

"The Commandatore was called away on business, and he told me not to
wait dinner. He expects to be back during the evening." Guy submitted,
and followed her into the drawing-room.

"You are a stranger, Guy," she said. "I think it is downright mean of
you to desert us."

Guy, meeting her glance, told himself that he had been egregiously
mistaken in thinking that Myra had ever thought of him save as a
brother.

"You don't seem to have suffered from my absence," he said lightly.

"Don't you think I have grown thin?" she answered. There was mockery in
her tone.

Guy was glad to find her in so cheerful a mood. He smiled back at her,
and for the first time looked at her with seeing eyes. She stood before
him in the perfection of her young womanhood, glowing with health and
youth and beauty. Truly she was beautiful. He wondered that he not
realised how beautiful before. He did not know how carefully she had
studied the part she intended to play. He had no idea that the gown,
which adorned and but half concealed the contours of her figure, had
been expressly designed for his allurement.

"I have never seen you looking so well," he answered.

She saw the admiration in his glance, but gave no sign of doing so,
though her heart began to throb with hope.

"I'm afraid I can't return the compliment," she answered. "You look
as if you hadn't been to bed for a week. Now come along in to dinner
and tell me what you have been doing with yourself."

She took his arm, and they entered the dining-room together. "For the
last time, perhaps," he murmured to himself regretfully. Myra was a
good sort, he mused. Despite her waves of anger she had always been
thoughtful of his welfare. Yet she was part of Hora's life. He forgot
her momentarily in his surroundings. Everything was so homelike. Meriel
Challys was an occupant of dreamland, surely, and he had never really
experienced all the mental disturbances which had troubled him. He
awoke to reality with the popping of a cork.

"No wine," he said.

Myra pouted rosy lips at him. "I insist," she replied imperiously. "In
default of a fatted calf, which one cannot possibly get served in a
flat, I insist upon champagne."

She lifted her glass to her lips. "May all our hopes come true!" she
said, and drank.

There was something infectious in her gaiety. Guy raised his glass in
response. "Amen!" he said fervently. The wine brought colour to his
cheeks and brightness to his eyes. He suddenly remembered that he was
hungry, and that he had eaten nothing since breakfast, and that then a
bare morsel of toast had been almost more than he could swallow. Myra
watched him with a smile ever on her lips, and chattered vivaciously of
Scarborough. She did not ask him concerning his doings. She desired to
lull his memories to rest, and Guy was willing to let them slumber. He
did not perceive that danger threatened his new-made resolutions.

Under the spell of Myra's vivacity he became his natural self. He was
even surprised when he found himself laughing naturally. The dinner was
not too long, and every dish, Guy noted, was one for which at one
time or another he had expressed a preference. He was thirsty, and his
glass was always full.

The dinner came to an end.

"We will have coffee in the drawing-room," she said. "Then I can smoke,
too."

He rose and accompanied her. Her hope was growing strong now. She
was satisfied with her work so far. She had never before held Guy's
interest for so long a time.

"Your old chair," she said to him, as they entered together.

A fire was blazing merrily on the hearth, for the heat wave which had
swept the city had been driven away by the storm, and the night was
cold.

"Fires in August," he said, as he entered.

She looked at him strangely.

"There's something comforting to me in the fire," she answered.
"Especially now I'm so much alone. I often have one lighted whatever
the thermometer says, and sit for hours looking into it."

She knelt down on the snowy fur of the rug, and stretched her arms to
the blaze.

Guy was stricken again with a sense of her beauty. Her eyes were half
closed. She might have been a priestess offering an oblation to the
spurting flames which threw rosy shadows on her face and arms and
shoulders.

"I love the fire," she said dreamily. "I think I am almost a
fire-worshipper. When the flames spring up, my heart rejoices so that
I can sing aloud, and when they die down into a dull red glow, I can
dream and dream. But when the fire is out--Guy! Don't you just hate
ashes--cold ashes?"

She turned on him suddenly.

He did not know what to reply. He did not know Myra in this mood.

She looked again into the fire.

"The end of everything is ashes, and so I would wish the fire never to
go out. Some day our fires will be out, and we shall be ashes, too. Do
you ever think of that, Guy?"

He thought bitterly that his hopes were ashes already, but he strove to
infuse cheerfulness into his reply.

"Isn't that rather morbid, Myra?" he said.

She turned towards him again, and laid her hand on the arm of his
chair. "No," she answered. "I say to myself, make the most of the fire
while it is there, for to ashes it must come at last. That's no morbid
doctrine." She laughed joyously, and shot a glance at him beneath her
eyelids. "The fire is alight in us both, Guy. The fire of youth and
health and strength. Ought we not to make the most of the fire before
it burns itself out?"

For half a moment Guy was startled. The glance, the words, the covert
invitation of the outstretched arms dazed him. Almost he believed that
the invitation was to him. But the thought passed. Myra was laughing
again. "You see, I am growing up, Guy," she remarked.

A man brought in coffee and liquors. Myra waited on Guy, bringing him
a cigarette and lighting it for him, as he sat in his chair. Then she
perched herself on the arm to light her own cigarette from his. As she
bent over him a sudden mad impulse to clasp her in his arms seized
him. A memory--the memory of Meriel--came before him and the impulse
passed, but it left him strangely agitated.

Myra seemed to observe nothing of this emotion. She threw herself at
length upon the rug, resting her head on her hand, gazing into the
fire. The sinuous lines of her figure were outlined clearly against the
whiteness of the rug. She rose suddenly, and without a word snapped off
the electric lights and, returning, threw herself down again in the
same attitude. She seemed oblivious of his presence. The murmur of the
traffic entered through the open window, the firelight flickered. Guy
began to feel as if some unknown agency were at work to deprive him of
his senses. Myra's words dwelt in his mind. "The fire is alight in us
both, Guy. Ought we not to make the most of the fire before it burns
itself out?"

There was a murmur of voices in the hall. Guy listened. Perhaps the
Commandatore had returned. A door closed sharply. There was no other
sound. He realised then that the servants had gone. He was alone with
Myra in the flat. It had happened hundreds of times previously, but
never had he realised it before. Perhaps it was that the Myra with whom
he had dined was so entirely new to him, an utterly different Myra to
the sisterly being with whom he had quarrelled and petted when they
lived under the same roof. Supposing Hora should not return----

Myra was looking at him. She had turned where she
lay and resting on her elbows she was gazing up at
him. There was a challenge in her glance.

"Am I beautiful, Guy?" she asked.

His brain whirled. He fought against the web which seemed to be
enveloping him against his will. He did not know that the languor which
possessed him was largely due to reaction after the mental and physical
strain he had so recently undergone. His voice was husky as he evaded
the question.

"What strange devil possesses you to-night, Myra?"

"I am beautiful, am I not?" she repeated.

She had drawn herself up to his knees, and knelt beside his chair.

"You have never told me I am beautiful," she whispered coaxingly. Her
hair brushed his cheeks. Her lips were very near his. Without his will,
it seemed, his hand fell upon her firm white arm, and he thrilled at
the touch.

"Myra, Myra, you will steal away my soul."

The cry was wrung from him.

Her eyes flashed. It was as if the fire she had spoken of had burst
into a blaze.

"I have given you mine long ago," she answered. Her arms were thrown
about him. "Guy, don't you know, haven't you seen how I love you?" She
whispered the words tremulously while her drooping lids half veiled the
passion glowing in her eyes, and her bosom rose and fell stormily. "No
one can ever love you as I love you, Guy."

She thought she was secure of victory. Her lips half parted for the
expected kiss. Guy had risen, holding her tightly to him. She drooped
in his arms. Almost he was won. "You have stolen my love," she murmured.

What strange fate brought those particular words to her lips? Guy,
thrilling in response to the passion which throbbed in her veins, his
senses enthralled by the diablerie of her beauty, remembered that
Meriel had used the very same words. He forgot where he was. Once again
he was on the deck of the yacht, becalmed, and hope had passed him by
with a flowing sail. Had hope come again? Myra loved him. And he had
not stolen her love. His conscience was clear there. Yet she loved
him, and he was hungry for love. Could he give her love in return? He
knew that he could not. Passion he could give, a short-lived fire. No,
no, no! A thousand times no. It would be desecration of the memory he
cherished. The conflict was brief.

He gently loosened the entwining arms which held him. He could not
trust himself to speak. He placed the girl gently in the chair and
turned away. She sprang after him, realising his intention.

"Guy," she cried, "you cannot be so cruel."

There was agony in her voice, and despair in her gesture. She was
carried away by the violence of her emotion.

"I only ask you to love me a little." Her words were those of a child
pleading. "I will be so good, so good. I only want to be near you, Guy.
I won't ask you to be all mine, only that sometimes you will be kind
and remember me." Her mood changed. She threw herself to her knees.
"I am beautiful, Guy, I know I am beautiful. There are not many women
so beautiful as I am, Guy, and----" She held up her hands pleadingly.
"You won't leave me all alone--stop just this once, Guy."

He held her hands tightly, and as she looked into his eyes she knew
that her hope was vain. Her mouth drooped at the corners. She freed her
hands and dropped, a pathetic figure of despair, on to the rug.

Guy walked to the door. But he could not leave her so. He came back and
knelt beside her.

"If I believed in God, I would say, 'God help both of us, Myra.'"
There was a quiver of pain in his voice. "I, too, love, and my love is
hopeless. I did not know, Myra."

She was listening, and now she raised herself. The passion had gone out
of her face. Her eyes were dull.

"It does not matter," she said. "I have been a fool."

He paid no heed to her words, but went on steadily.

"My love is hopeless," he said. "I do not think I can ever love again,
but here am I, and if you think"--he hesitated a moment--"if you think
I can make you happy in any way--Myra, will you marry me? You shall
have no cause to complain."

A sob shook her frame. "No," she said, "I have been a fool. It is your
love I want, and now I know it cannot be mine, I want to be alone." She
pointed to the fire. "The flames have died away. Soon there will only
be dead ashes. Help me up, Guy." He assisted her to rise. "I think I'll
go to bed, Guy," she said. "Good-night."

She held out one hand. He took both, and, drawing her to him, kissed
her. She responded with a kiss innocent as a child's.

When she passed out he left the door ajar. Later on he went to the
door of her room and listened. He could hear her regular breathing and
judged she slept. Yet he kept vigil until the dawn broke. Then he
ventured to peep into her room. Yes, she slept with tears glistening on
her eyelashes. The fear which had beset him, lest she should have been
tempted to end her life, was relieved. He put on his coat and hat, and
let himself out.

"Poor Myra!" he thought pityingly. He was developing rapidly.
The previous morning he had been pitying himself.



CHAPTER XXIII

A FRIEND IN ADVERSITY


Blue skies and sunshine and a rippling silver sea, all nature
jocund and gay, and for the first time in her young life Meriel was
unresponsive to the appeal. The romance had gone out of life. The man
she had learned to love was a thief--a thief. She told herself fiercely
that she no longer loved him, that she had never loved him, but the
ache at her heart gave the lie to the declaration.

The perpetual ache at her heart! If she could only have shared the
burden with Mrs. Marven, taken advantage of her Aunt's sympathetic
counsel, sobbed out her trouble and her despair on that motherly
breast, the pain would have been easier to bear. But she could not do
that. Thief though he was, Meriel could not betray Guy's confidence.

Mrs. Marven wondered at the girl's reticence. Yet she waited in
patience for the confidence which was not yet given. Sooner or later
she felt it would be given to her. Her husband had told her of Guy's
conversation with him. She gathered that no ordinary blow had shattered
her darling's romance, and, though she longed to counsel and to
comfort, to mingle her tears with Meriel's, yet she did not press her
for the confidence which was withheld.

Yet, though the girl suffered, she strove to put her misery
from her, to busy herself with trivial duties. She went to the garden,
but she could not remain amongst the flowers. Her glance fell on a rose
Guy had tied. Now it was battered by the storm, and shapeless--like her
romance. She passed through the garden, across the meadow, and on to
the sea-wall. She desired to be alone, that was all. She strolled idly
along, unseeing anything but the tide slowly rising over the mud, quite
unconscious of the approach of an acquaintance.

Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim had recognised Meriel while yet some distance
away, and had hastened his footsteps. He had wondered that she was
alone, but congratulated himself on the fact, for then Guy would
probably be alone, too. He wanted a private conference with Guy. He,
too, had been troubled greatly in his thoughts during the previous day
and night. Ever since Cornelius Jessel had revealed to him the fact
that one item of his missing property was in Guy's possession, he had
been rejoicing in the thought that vengeance on his spoliators was soon
to be within his reach. Not that he wholly trusted the valet's word.
The shadow-man was not possessed of a confidence-inspiring personality,
but the man had not asked for any cash on account for the information
he had furnished. Flurscheim judged that the informer must have been
quite convinced as to the truth of his information, or he would not
have been so confiding. Flurscheim had arranged with him to secure the
miniature so that he might identify it. After that his course would be
simple. The police would do the rest. He blessed the lucky chance which
had brought him to recognise the strange likeness which existed between
Meriel and the missing miniature. But for that curious coincidence
he might never have had the opportunity of getting on the track of his
missing treasures.

Meriel had been correct in her intuition when she read another meaning
in his warning to Guy to beware of the approaching storm. He could not
resist the jest. But then the events which had immediately followed
played havoc with his plans and projects.

Guy had saved his life. Would the man who had robbed him have done
that? Hildebrand Flurscheim set great store by his life. When he felt
himself falling, when the water closed over his head, a great horror
possessed him. He struggled madly, blindly, against the fearful thing.
Then a strong hand had gripped him. He had still struggled until dimly
he had comprehended that a cool voice was commanding him to be still,
telling him that he was safe. The words repeated again and again had
impressed themselves upon his consciousness. He had ceased to struggle.
He had trusted entirely to the strong hand which supported him. Then,
he knew not how, other hands had lifted him up and taken him into a
boat. He had opened his eyes and seen Guy clamber up over the stern,
had heard him say, "Not much the matter, eh, Mr. Flurscheim?"

The experience seemed to have lasted hours. He said little, but
he had insisted, when Guy was put aboard the _Witch_, on
shaking the young man's hand. And when, afterwards, the horror of
those moments returned to him there was renewed in his mind the
feeling of gratitude to his preserver. He was glad that it was
in his power to repay in some measure the debt of gratitude he
owed. Guy had given his life. Well, he could give Guy liberty.
Yet he was not altogether satisfied in his mind. He had
no reason for thinking that Guy had worked single-handed, and he saw no
reason why other parties should be participants in his gratitude. Yet,
rather than Guy should suffer, all the guilty parties should escape.
Certainly the experience of being at hand-grips with death had wrought
a wonderful change in Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim's views, for it was
with this determination in his mind that he left his yacht, intending
to call at the Hall and tell Guy of Jessel's communication, and of his
determination not to act upon the information.

Not until he was a yard away and he spoke, did Meriel recognise the
connoisseur. A shadow of annoyance crossed her face. This man seemed
to her to be the cause, though a perfectly innocent cause, of Guy's
undoing. She bowed slightly, and would have passed by, but Flurscheim
stood in her path.

"Pardon me, Miss Challys," he said, "can you tell me where I can find
Mr. Guy Hora? I have something of importance to say to him."

There was a shade of agitation in his voice. Meriel was startled. Again
the thought came to her, "Did he suspect Guy? Was that the explanation
of the presence of himself and his yacht at Whitsea?"

She strove to answer steadily.

"Mr. Hora left for London by the first train this morning."

An exclamation of annoyance escaped Flurscheim. "It is most important
that I should see him at once. Most important. Will you give me his
address? I must send him a wire immediately."

The colour left her face. She trembled. She was sure now that
Flurscheim knew who had robbed him of his treasures, that his anxiety
was due to the fear lest the robber should escape him. How could she
warn Guy? How could she refuse to supply Flurscheim with the address
he asked? Even if she were to refuse, her aunt or uncle would give it.
They knew of no reason why it should be kept secret.

Flurscheim saw her hesitation, and a strange suspicion germinated in
his mind. "Surely she is not one of the gang," he thought.

His intent gaze increased her discomposure. His suspicions increased.
He ventured a bold stroke.

"I wish to make some return for the service Mr. Hora has rendered me,"
he said quietly. "Facts have come to my knowledge which go to show that
he is in considerable danger. If you do not trust me, will you convey
to him the warning?"

Again she looked at him doubtingly. "You would be his friend?" she
asked amazedly.

"If Mr. Hora will allow me," he answered, and seeing that she still
hesitated, he continued earnestly. "Will you not believe me, Miss
Challys, when I say that I would do anything in my power to save Mr.
Hora from a fate which would mean absolute ruin to him. May I go so far
as to say that if you are in the slightest degree interested in his
welfare you will not waste any time in communicating to him the message
I will give you."

There was a deep feeling expressed more in his tone than the words he
used. Instinctively Meriel felt that he was to be trusted.

"I will give you Guy--Mr. Hora's address," she remarked. "I cannot
communicate with him myself."

"Why--I thought----" he remarked and paused.

Meriel did not pretend to misunderstand the swiftly checked
exclamation. She shook her head sadly.

"I am a very unhappy girl, Mr. Flurscheim," she said, and despite her
efforts tears mounted to her eyes.

"There! There! There! Say no more," interrupted the connoisseur
hastily. "Misunderstandings will occur between young people."

Meriel again shook her head. "Yesterday Mr. Hora told me something
regarding himself which I could not have suspected; part of what he
told me concerned you, Mr. Flurscheim, and--so he has gone."

"Then the miniature did not come into his possession by accident!"
ejaculated Flurscheim. "And all the time I was hoping that it had."

"No," said Meriel. "It was no accident." The words slipped from her.
Flurscheim realised that she knew all about the robbery. He began to
question her eagerly, but she would answer him nothing. Already she
had been betrayed into a confidence which she regretted, and when he
realised her difficulty, he ceased to ask for details.

"It makes no difference in my intentions," he said. "Whether Mr. Hora
was himself the burglar who stole my picture and the miniatures, or
whether he was only one of the parties who handled them afterwards,
would make no difference to my course of action. If he is warned
immediately there will be time for him to clear out of the way. If
not----" He shrugged his shoulders expressively.

"But why?" asked Meriel.

Flurscheim repeated the story Jessel had told him.

"I can keep the man's mouth closed for a certain time," he
said, "but sooner or later he will blab it out, and once the police get
on the track----" Again he shrugged his shoulders.

Meriel was more than ever amazed at the Jew's attitude. She let some of
her surprise escape in speech.

"You, knowing where some of your valuables are, are willing to forego
all chance of their recovery, to let the--the thief--go unpunished? You
who everybody says had determined to spend the whole of the rest of
your life on the recovery."

The Jew spread out the palms of his hands in a characteristically
racial gesture.

"The rest of my life," he said. "My life would have been ended
yesterday but for Mr. Guy Hora. Strange as it may seem, life is very
good in my eyes. I might never have known how good but for my accident.
It was slipping away and he gave it back to me. That was a debt which
I must repay. Miss Challys, never yet have I failed to meet every
obligation that I have incurred. Ask Christian or Jew who has ever had
dealings with me if Hildebrand Flurscheim has ever failed to take up
his bond when it became due."

She murmured something about the nobility of his attitude, but he would
not accept any such complimentary description.

"It is just my business point of view," he remarked drily. "Suppose I
put the value of the pictures at fifty thousand pounds. Personally I
would give double that amount for my life, though I should very much
doubt whether anybody else would give as many pence."

Laughter and tears strove for mastery in her face.

"You have greatly relieved my mind, Mr. Flurscheim," she
said softly. "Though I shall never see Mr. Hora again, yet I--I could
not bear to think of him in prison."

"You had better see him again, and quickly, too, if you want to keep
him out of it," snapped the Jew promptly in response. "It will want a
woman's hand to do that, and from what I have observed you are about
the only person in the world who has half a chance of succeeding."

The direct attack, voicing the thought she had striven to suppress,
brought the colour surging to her cheeks. "Don't you understand," she
cried. "He is a thief--a thief."

"He seems to be a rare plucky one anyway," answered Flurscheim. Meriel
laughed hysterically. "There! There! There!" said the connoisseur in
his most soothing manner, "I didn't mean to hurt you, and I can see you
are very much upset. Perhaps we will talk over this bad business later
and see what we can manage between us."

There was so much kindness in his manner, so real a delicacy in his
whole attitude, that Meriel felt more than ever inclined to confide the
whole story to him. He was a man of the world. He owed Guy a debt of
gratitude. She had not promised Guy to keep silence. He had never asked
her, for he had realised that the request would have been an insult.
There was little time to argue the matter with herself. Flurscheim was
impatient to depart. She obeyed the impulse.

"Mr. Flurscheim," she said, "will you treat what I tell you as strictly
confidential, and take no action without my permission?"

"I give you my word," he said gravely.

Meriel glanced round her. No living soul was in sight. They stood alone
upon the sea-wall. Flurscheim noted her glance.

"There's no chance of being overheard," he remarked. At a little
distance was a stile in a rail fence which separated one meadow from
another. Flurscheim pointed to it.

"Come along," he said brusquely, and there the girl made known to her
companion the story of Guy's life as she had heard it from his lips.

"He is not so greatly to blame, is he, Mr. Flurscheim?" she asked
eagerly, when she had finished the narration. "And yet nothing can
alter the fact that he is a thief."

The Jew had listened with growing amazement. To him the story seemed
the wildest, maddest romance he had ever heard. He could scarcely
believe his ears. To Meriel's appeal he could only reply at first with
an Hebraic invocation, uttered beneath his breath. Then he asked, "And
you really think he was telling the truth?"

"If you had seen his face, you would have had no need to ask the
question," she answered sorrowfully.

"It's the tallest story I've ever heard," he remarked. "But whether
true or not, if we want to do anything for him the first step is to get
him out of the hands of that old scoundrel of a father, and," he added,
"I am more than ever convinced that only a woman can do that. Think it
over, Miss Challys, think it over." He glanced at his watch. "Now if
you will give me his address, I will be off. I have a number of things
to do before returning to town."

She gave him the address. She responded heartily to his
farewell, and as she stood watching him as he hastened along the path
towards the quay it seemed to her that already the burden of her
trouble was lightened. She trusted Flurscheim implicitly, and yet
twenty-four hours previously she would have been prepared to assert
that he would have been the last person in the world of whom she would
have taken counsel in her distress.

Not that her mind was at rest. She merely was relieved from
anxiety as regards Guy's immediate safety. As to the future
there was no trace of a silver lining to the clouds. Guy and
she had parted. Yet Flurscheim's words stuck in her brain.
"Only a woman could help him." Only a woman!



CHAPTER XXIV

INSPECTOR KENLY CONTEMPLATES ACTION


Events were coiling themselves swiftly, and Lynton Hora at the very
centre of the coil was inert, motionless, unaware of the web which was
being spun about him. Indeed some of those various parties who were the
actors in the events, the puppets who had been set in motion by Hora's
initiative to spin the web for his own entwining, were unaware even
that they were spinning such a web.

But Inspector Kenly knew. He guessed that there must have been
some master mind behind Guy's exploits, and once he had fixed upon
Lynton Hora as the possessor of that master mind he was a sleuth
hound on the trail. Where Hora was, Kenly was not far distant.
When Hora left Westminster Mansions on the night of Guy's arrival,
Kenly was at his heels. He tracked him to a railway station, back
from the railway station to one of the big London hotels. He did
not leave the premises until Hora had retired for the night. Then
he went back to Westminster Mansions and learned of Guy's arrival
there. He was very curious as to the meaning of the movements of
the two men. He could not watch them both, and though he longed
to have followed the business through without assistance the
risk had become too great. He went in haste to Scotland Yard and
requisitioned the assistance of a subordinate to watch the
Mansions. He himself returned to the hotel. He was still more astounded
next morning when Hora returned quietly to his own abode, and was
totally unable to deduce anything from the fact that Guy had left the
flat at daybreak. It was so mysterious that he could not rest. He went
again to the Yard and asked for another man.

"I think I am on the track of the Flurscheim gang," he explained. "It's
only a case of suspicion at present, and I still have the Foreign
Office business in hand."

"The Yard" was sore at its failure to solve the mystery of the stolen
picture, and a dozen men would have been at the Inspector's command
if he had so desired. He promised to explain later, saying that the
necessity for placing his men was urgent, and so he managed to keep
his information to himself. His instructions to his subordinates were
simple and explicit. Unseen themselves, one was to follow Lynton Hora,
the other was not to lose sight of Guy. If either of the two under
surveillance attempted to leave the country he was to be detained. The
warrant would be forthcoming if needed. Already the Inspector had his
information drawn out. But there were three names in that information,
and the third was that of Captain Marven.

His subordinates instructed in their duties, the detective
hurried off to the Foreign Office. Ever since the Permanent
Secretary had suggested asking Captain Marven for an explanation
Kenly's mind had been busy with the idea. Though he had been
horror stricken at first, the more he pondered over it, the more
advantageous it seemed. Though Captain Marven's name appeared in
his unsworn information, he still doubted whether the King's
Messenger could be hand in glove with the Horas. If the suggested
interview took place in his presence, he would be able to judge by the
Captain's demeanour as to whether he was in any way implicated in the
despatch business. If implicated in that, there would be every reason
to suspect that he must have had a hand in the Flurscheim burglary. So
he sought out the Permanent Secretary and proffered his request. It met
with a ready acceptance. "Captain Marven," said the Secretary, "is next
on the rota for service. If I had not employed him, the mere fact would
have caused comment as well as arousing his suspicions, and I really
could not have employed him while this cloud is hanging over him."

"He will be expecting a call to town then?" asked Inspector Kenly.
"If he gets the usual notice he will be taken entirely by surprise on
finding why he has been summoned."

"I will wire for him, if you like," said the Permanent Secretary.

"No," said the detective, "to-morrow will do."

"Then I'll have a letter sent to him in the ordinary way," said the
Permanent Secretary. "Of course, you understand," he continued, "that
we shall take no action in regard to the despatch business beyond
dispensing with Captain Marven's services. It would be fatal to our
diplomacy if the impression were to get abroad that any of our people
were not absolutely trustworthy."

Inspector Kenly looked aghast. "But, what if he is concerned in the
other business?" he asked. "Mustn't he pay the penalty?"

"The penalty of twenty-four hours' law in which to get out of England,
with someone in charge of him to see that he does not communicate
with the rest of the gang," said the Permanent Secretary drily. "Exile
will be punishment enough in itself."

Inspector Kenly sighed. He saw his case robbed of one of its most
sensational features, and he loved to see sensational headlines to the
newspaper reports of the cases in which he was engaged. He left the
Foreign Office less elate than he had entered it, but, indefatigable
still, he visited each of his subordinates in turn. Neither had any
movement to report. Both Lynton Hora and Guy remained in their own
abodes. Kenly thought that he had earned a little repose. He got into
a cab, drove to the railway station, and took a train to Wimbledon. He
fell into a doze before the train started, and in his dreamy state he
thought longingly of white sheets which were awaiting him at Woodbine
Cottage. For forty-eight hours he had not closed his eyes. He felt
thoroughly wearied.

He alighted at his station and stepped out briskly homewards. Then, as
he turned into Melpomene Road, he saw in front of him a figure which
he recognised. He was so surprised that he pinched himself to assure
himself that he was not dreaming.

"My friend Mr. Jessel, by Henry!" he remarked. "I wonder what he is
doing down in this quarter again."

He moderated his pace and followed Jessel until the latter, on
arriving at the gate of Woodbine Cottage, lifted the latch and
entered. By the time the Inspector had reached the gate Cornelius had
knocked at the door, and as Kenly raised the latch, Mrs. Inspector
Kenly appeared in answer to the summons of her late lodger. But
Mrs. Kenly paid no attention to her visitor. Her glance had
travelled beyond him and rested on her husband, whom she had not seen
for a fortnight. She brushed the astonished Cornelius aside and darted
along the little path. The shadow-man felt quite embarrassed by the
warmth of the connubial greeting. He called attention to his presence
by a little cough. It was successful. Kenly looked over his wife's
shoulder and gave a well feigned start of surprise.

"Blessed if it isn't our friend, Mr. Jessel," he remarked. "Who ever
would have thought of seeing you here again? Anyhow, I take it very
kindly your looking us up so soon. Come in, old chap, come in. You must
excuse the missus and me. I'm only just back from my little holiday,
you know. We don't do this sort of thing in the front garden every
night."

Mr. Jessel smiled and Mrs. Kenly opened her eyes widely. She had never
known her husband to be so effusive with a lodger, new or old. But like
a wise woman she said nothing, but, blushing a little, seconded her
husband's invitation.

"If--if I had known you were expected," said Jessel turning to Kenly,
"I would have postponed my call for an hour. Perhaps you will allow me
to come back a little later."

"Not at all," said Kenly heartily. "Come in and have a cup of tea with
us. I'm sure the wife will be proud to give you one."

Mrs. Kenly opened her eyes wider than ever. She could very well have
dispensed with her late lodger's company, but she had suddenly realised
that her husband must have some hidden reason for his geniality. Had
he not arrived at Jessel's very heels? Scenting a mystery she
played up to the Inspector's lead, and Jessel, visibly gratified by the
warmth of the greeting, no longer rejected the proffered hospitality.
In a very few minutes he was seated at the detective's table doing
justice to the delicacies which Mrs. Kenly produced from larder and
cupboard in honour of her lord's return.

He had soon revealed the motive for his call. He wanted to know if the
room he had occupied was still unlet, for, if so, he desired, having
suddenly lost his situation, to return to the place where he had been
so comfortable. Mrs. Kenly hardly knew what to reply. She was already
in negotiation with another party. But her inclination towards so
quiet and well behaved a lodger as Mr. Jessel, strengthened by the
surreptitious nod of approval from her husband, ultimately led to her
declaring that she thought the negotiations in progress might be broken
off and Mr. Jessel installed in his former quarters.

Cornelius was delighted, and said so.

"I should like to come in this very night," he said. "I have nowhere
but an hotel to go to, and I never can sleep at an hotel."

Again in obedience to her husband's mute request Mrs. Kenly, after
a decent amount of hesitation, acceded to his wishes, and when the
shadow-man at last left them it was merely to fetch his baggage.

Mrs. Kenly accompanied the returned lodger to the door, and when she
returned to the parlour she found that her husband had disappeared.

"Well, I do think he is not treating me quite fairly," she murmured,
and unaccustomed tears rose to her eyes. But they dried rapidly as she
heard a thud on the floor of the room overhead and recognised the
fall of a boot. She hastened upstairs and found her husband already
half-undressed.

"Whatever in the world is the matter, Joe?" she asked. Inspector Kenly
grunted.

"Can't keep my eyes open any longer, not if you were to prop up the
lids with steel bars, Loo," he answered.

His eyes were not so closely shut, however, that they were unable to
detect the disappointment which was expressed in his wife's face. He
caught her in his arms and imprinted a couple of kisses on her lips.

"I haven't had a wink of sleep for forty-eight hours," he said, "and I
only wish I could do without for another forty-eight. But a nap while I
get the chance will make another man of me. Now listen, Loo. What time
did Jessel say he was coming back?"

"He said he was afraid that it would not be much before midnight,"
replied Mrs. Kenly.

"Give me a call at 11.30, then," said Inspector Kenly, and he tumbled
into bed and gave a huge sigh of relief. Then he raised his head. "If
he gets back earlier call me."

"But what makes you so interested in Mr. Jessel?" she asked, unable any
longer to restrain her curiosity.

"Come here, Loo," said Kenly, and as his wife drew near he whispered,
"That young man is mixed up in some way with the Flurscheim burglary.
No, don't interrupt. I haven't time to tell you all about it, and that
is much more than I ought to have told you. Now you know why I was so
anxious that you should get him back here."

"But suppose he doesn't come back," said Mrs. Kenly.

"He will come back right enough," answered the detective drowsily as he
laid his head again upon the pillow.

"But," said Mrs. Kenly, and then paused. Her husband's eyes had closed.
His mouth was slightly open. In another few seconds an unmistakable
snore made itself heard. Mrs. Kenly drew the blinds and noiselessly
withdrew downstairs. She was excited, but not too excited to neglect
her ordinary duties.

The hours passed slowly. When ten and eleven had gone without any sign
of Jessel she began to be alarmed. Still he had said he might not be
back until midnight. At half past eleven she aroused her husband,
thoughtfully taking with her a cup of tea. He was sleeping so soundly
that she was compelled to shake him before he could be aroused. She had
just succeeded when the sound of a cab drawing up in the street outside
the garden gate arrested her attention. Kenly heard it too, and sprang
out of bed.

"Keep him talking until I come down," he said.

The next minute the modest knock at the door announced Jessel's
arrival, and Mrs. Kenly hurried downstairs to let him in.

"Half afraid I should have found you all in bed," he said as he
entered. "You don't mind leaving the door open while I fetch my bags?"

By the time he had made two journeys to the cab Inspector Kenly was
standing by his wife's side, and he was inviting the shadow-man to join
him in a nightcap before retiring to rest.

Cornelius was agreeable. He followed his host into the tiny parlour
where Mrs. Kenly produced a bottle and glasses from the sideboard and
a jug of hot water and a lemon from the kitchen.

"It's just like coming 'ome," said Jessel.

"We'll make you feel at home here, right enough," replied the Inspector.

When a little later Mrs. Kenly said good-night and retired Jessel felt
so much at home indeed that he was easily persuaded to take "just one
more" before following her example. He grew quite talkative, yet even
under the detective's skilful guidance he could not be led to speak
upon the one subject which his host was anxious to get him to talk
about. Kenly was afraid to put leading questions lest he should become
alarmed too early.

There was a time for all things, however, and the time came when the
Inspector thought it desirable that his companion should receive a
shock. It arrived when, after Jessel had knocked the ashes out of his
pipe and remarked that he thought it was about time to turn in.

"There's one thing I want to ask you first," remarked the detective
quietly. "Who was the old gentleman, got up like a parson, who came to
visit you here?"

The shot told. Jessel grew suddenly pale and his jaw dropped. "Old
gentleman? What old gentleman?" he stammered.

Kenly did not reply immediately. He walked across the room and
deliberately turned the key in the lock and placed the key in his
pocket. Then returning he took a card from his waistcoat pocket and
laid it on the table before his companion.

"You don't seem to be aware who I am, Jessel," he said pleasantly.

Mechanically Cornelius lifted up the card, and as he read
his face grew longer than ever. He laid the card on the table. Kenly,
noticing his shaking hand, smiled.

"Detective Inspector Kenly from Scotland Yard," said Cornelius, as if
bewildered.

"That's me," declared Kenly. "And I mean to have an answer to the
question I have just asked you." Jessel's confusion was almost pitiable
to witness. The mine that had been sprung upon him took his breath
away. To think that he had been a tenant of a member of the detective
force, sleeping under the same roof, and that the Master had come to
see him there was too preposterous to be believed.

"You--you're joking," he stammered at last.

"Not the least little bit in the world, as you will find out to your
cost, Mr. Jessel, if you don't answer my questions," replied Kenly
readily. Then he added, "I know all about you, so I really think it
will be best for you to meet me in a friendly way."

Cornelius remembered a dozen little schemes of his which had brought
him in cash which would not bear the light of day, and his heart
quailed. He never for a moment imagined that Kenly was merely bluffing.
Still he made an effort in his own defence.

"You--you know nothing against me," he asserted. "I--I've never done
anything wrong." His tone and manner gave the lie to his assertion, and
Kenly began to feel on safe ground.

"You may not think so, but I'm quite sure a magistrate would not agree
with you," said Kenly with conviction. "Still I don't suggest testing
the matter if you will tell me what I want to know."

Cornelius saw no means of escape. He surrendered at
discretion, and when the conference was ended the detective was in
possession of the whole story of the shadow-man's connection with Guy
Hora from the moment when he had been employed by "the Master" to watch
over him until that day when Guy had suddenly paid him a month's wages
and bidden him depart at once.

Long after the conference was ended the detective brooded over the
information which had come into his possession. He could not understand
it. Jessel was manifestly unaware of the identity of the man he called
"The Master" with Lynton Hora. Nor could he suggest any reason why Guy
should have so suddenly dispensed with his services. The detective did
not enlighten Cornelius on the first point, nor did he suggest that the
second fact might have been due to some discovery made by Guy that the
casket containing the stolen miniature had been tampered with. Jessel
had revealed everything, even the momentous discovery he had made, the
discovery he had communicated to Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim.

Kenly tired of puzzling his brain after a while with theories.
He made his way once more up to his bedroom and resumed
the sleep from which he had been awakened.



CHAPTER XXV

THE PARTING OF THE WAYS


A minute after Guy had peeped into her bedroom Myra awakened. Her sleep
had been short and she awoke unrefreshed. She arose mechanically and
was surprised that her maid was not there, that her bath was not ready.
She looked at a clock and saw that the hour was not yet five. She lay
down again upon her bed and watched the clouds chasing each other
across the sky. She fell to counting them as they crossed her field
of vision, bounded by the two sides of the window frame. In the first
hour there were seventy-two, between six and seven, twenty-one, between
seven and eight, only three. When the maid came at half past eight the
sky had been untarnished for a whole half hour.

She told the girl to make the bath hot. The hot water was very
comforting. She found a physical satisfaction in the caress of the warm
water. As a child she had always delighted in her bath. She recalled
her childish delight. Anything to keep thought at bay.

After the bath she dressed slowly. The maid was exasperated, but
Myra was quite heedless of the fact. The day was hardly begun,
and there were so many hours in the day to be filled somehow with
anything that would stave off thought. At eleven she ordered
breakfast and sat down alone to it. The dishes went away untouched.
She took a newspaper into the drawing-room, but she got no
further than the door. It was there Guy had rejected the love she had
offered him. She had no feeling of shame, only she could not remain
there. She went instead to Lynton Hora's study. The room awakened
another thought. What would the Commandatore say? He had told her to
keep Guy, and Guy had gone. She remembered Hora's unuttered threat, but
she had not great fear of his anger. Still she knew he would be angry,
for Guy had offered to marry her, and she had refused the offer. It
was not marriage she wanted, only to be loved, and she was compelled
to refuse. But the Commandatore would blame her, for Guy had gone. Her
lips drooped at the thought. Her spirit was broken.

Lynton Hora returned. She heard his step in the hall, the firm footstep
followed by the shuffle of his lamed leg. But she did not attempt to
move. He came straight to his own room. She did not even glance up as
he entered.

"Where's Guy?" His voice was harsh.

"Gone," she replied without lifting her eyes.

For a minute no other word was spoken. Hora paced the room, up and down
from door to window, and every time he turned to face Myra the scowl
on his face deepened. Her manifest distress awakened no pity in him.
He even marvelled that he had ever thought her beautiful. Her face was
dull and expressionless, the lustre had gone from her hair, her figure
drooped despondently. She recalled to his mind a dropsical old woman,
clad in rags, with a palsied hand grasping at a bottle of gin in a
dilapidated outhouse in Fancy Lane.

"When is he coming back?" he snarled again.

"Never."

Did her lips fashion the word? She had no warrant for making so
definite a reply, but she knew that it was true.

Hora's anger nearly loosened a torrent of invective. But he refrained.
What was the use? Myra had failed. Guy was lost to him. She was of no
use to him now.

"If Guy has gone, you had better take yourself off, too," he said
deliberately.

She did not appear to hear him, and he repeated the command with
growing irritation.

He was surprised to see the tears trickle down her cheeks and the
corners of her mouth turn downwards. There had been no snivelling about
Myra in the past.

"I could not help Guy going. He does not love me," she said meekly.

Hora's scorn could no longer be restrained. "Love," he sneered. "The
world is mad on the subject, the besotted idiocy of immature brains.
Because a girl would and a boy won't a man's plans and schemes are to
be wrecked. I'll be alone in future. You can take yourself off as soon
as you like."

"Where am I to go?" she asked.

Hora shrugged his shoulders. "You have the whole world to choose from,"
he sneered. "Go where you like; your native gutter is about the only
place which is really suitable, but I don't care where you go so long
as you do not cross my path again."

For the first time Myra looked up. She met his glance, and so fierce an
anger blazed in his eyes that a thrill of physical fear passed through
her. Had she been in her normal condition the anger would have awakened
an answering flame in herself. But she was broken in spirit. She
shrank from meeting his anger. She rose listlessly from her chair and
went out of the room. She supposed that she must obey. She had always
obeyed Hora. But it was very hard to be turned out thus. Where to go?
That was a difficult question to decide at a moment's notice. Perhaps
the Commandatore was right, and that her proper place was the gutter.
The Commandatore was usually right.

She gathered together some of her jewels, and dressed herself in one of
her smartest frocks. She had a vague idea that she was doing unwisely,
but the bright colour attracted her. Her brain had room for only one
thought. She pinned on her hat carefully and went quietly out. She did
not cast one glance backwards. The bracelet Guy had had made for her
from the stones which had originally encircled the miniature was still
clasped upon her arm.

Hora saw her leave, but he made no effort to check her. He had not
intended to turn her from his door, and noting the frock and the hat he
was quite easy in his mind. "She will return," he said to himself, and
straightway began to think of Guy. If Guy was never going to return,
Hora foresaw that he must seek him out. He acted upon the decision
at once, and drove away to the Albany. He still had belief in his
own powers of persuasion. The thought of using Guy as a tool for his
revenge had passed entirely out of his mind. He wanted nothing but that
Guy, the son of his adoption, should come back to him.

At the Albany he arrived to find the newly furnished
chambers in confusion. Guy himself opened the door to admit
him. He did not appear surprised at the visit.

Hora enquired why Guy had answered the door himself.

"I've got rid of my man," said Guy.

"Retrenchment?" asked the Commandatore.

"Yes," said Guy.

"I don't see the necessity," said Hora.

"I do," answered Guy with gravity.

Hora had followed him into the sitting-room and stood there
expectantly. "Why?" he asked pointedly.

Guy hesitated. There was so much to explain that he did not know where
to begin. Hora's next question did not make his task easier.

"Myra tells me that you have deserted us, is it true?" he asked.

"I can hardly say definitely. The answer in all probability will not
rest with me," replied Guy.

He realised suddenly the whimsicality of the position in which he was
momentarily placed--the position of defending himself from the charge
of refusing to continue a criminal existence. The thought won a smile
from his lips.

"You cannot tell me?" said Hora. "Have you considered thoroughly?" He
stepped forward and laid his hand on the young man's arm. "Have you
considered what such a decision would mean to me, Guy? I am getting on
in years. You have always been with me. I might go far to meet your
wishes, even to the extent of abandoning my profession, if I could keep
you with me."

"It would not be enough." Guy's answer was stern and hard.

Hora was startled by the tone. "What more
can you require?" he asked.

"What more?" said Guy bitterly. "What more?" His face flushed and he
held up his hand. "Atonement," he replied, "atonement for the past."

There was accusation in Guy's tone, and Hora shrank under it, but he
rallied his wits. "Why so melodramatic?" he sneered.

"Oh, I know it sounds ridiculous in your ears," he answered, "but I
see no other way of regaining my own self-esteem." He turned fiercely
on Hora. "Why did you bring me up differently from other boys? Why did
you, day by day, week by week, and year by year, instil into my ears
your lying philosophy? Why did you make your son a thief--a thief?"

All the concentrated bitterness of Guy's musings was infused into the
concluding words. Hora's lips grew pale and his hands trembled as he
listened. He recognised the emotion from which Guy suffered by the
memory of his own experience when he had himself been branded in the
light of day and the sight of all men. Still he strove to meet the
point of view.

"I thought you had learned to place their true value upon conventional
terms," he remarked.

"I have," said Guy, more bitterly than before. "I have learned that a
thief is a thief whatever sophistry may be used to throw a glamour of
romance over his actions."

"I never taught you otherwise," remarked Hora, "only that all men are
thieves, only that the hypocritical many steal under the cloak of
the law, and the intellectually honest few pursue their avocation in
defiance of the law. Why reproach yourself for intellectual honesty?"

Guy made no reply and Hora plunged into argument. "What
is theft? Merely the acquisition of the desirable by unconventional
means. Is it a virtue to gratify your desire by the same process as
the dull souls that are presumably dignified by the name of common
humanity? If so, virtue is a mere synonym for mediocrity. I thought
you knew better, Guy. I thought that you had learned that man owes his
chief duty to himself, that his desires are meant to be gratified, that
the most courageous way of gratifying his desires is the only way for
man to attain his highest development."

He pursued the theme with animation. Guy had seated himself, leaning
his head on his hand. Hora thought that his attitude was one of deep
attention. When he paused for breath Guy spoke:

"It is of no use, Commandatore. I have gone over the same arguments
with myself a hundred times, but I can no longer persuade myself that
they are anything but sheer sophistry."

Lynton Hora shrugged his shoulders. "I don't understand why your
opinions should have undergone so sudden a change."

"And yet you have known a good woman's love?" said Guy suddenly.

The remark stung. Hora's eyes flashed and his lips closed tightly for a
few seconds before he trusted himself to speak.

"So that's the explanation," he said at last. "I thought as much. A
woman is responsible for every man's folly, and you like the rest
are ready to abuse your intellect at the bidding of some muling miss
whose intelligence will never allow her to discern the asses' ears
which adorn the image of the great divinity convention which
she worships in common with the majority of her feeble-minded fellows.
Who is this wonder who has robbed you of the use of your brains?
Am I right in guessing that she is of the family of that prince of
hypocrites, Marven? I can see I am right. And for one of that brood you
will cut yourself adrift from me, clothe yourself in the ready-made
fustian of the dull herd! An honest woman's love! There was never an
honest woman to be found amongst the Challys or Marvens----"

His anger had carried him out of himself, and too late Hora perceived
that his virulent tongue had said too much.

Guy had drawn himself up, pale with anger.

"Sir," he said, "I must ask you to leave me to myself. I cannot listen
to abuse of one who is more to me than anyone else in the world."

Hora strove to undo the effect of his words. "Chivalrous as ever, Guy,"
he remarked quietly, though despite his intention a sneer curled his
lips at what appeared to him a ridiculous exhibition of sentimentalism.

Guy did not reply to the taunt. He continued steadily:

"I must ask you to leave me, yet before you go, I will give you fair
warning of my intentions. You have learned of the alteration in my
opinions. I have told you that only by atonement shall I feel that I
can regain my self-esteem. There is only one atonement I can make."

"Yes," said Hora breathlessly.

"I intend to surrender myself to justice," said Guy, "within the next
forty-eight hours."

Lynton Hora was stunned. The utter madness of the idea left him bereft
of the power of speech for a moment, and when the capacity returned
to him he could only think of one argument.

"You are not reckoning on Meriel Challys marrying you when you have
'atoned,' as you call it," he said.

Guy shook his head. "I have no hope," he said wearily. "Good-bye,
Commandatore."

Hora made no answer. He knew that it was useless to argue with Guy any
longer. The set of his lips, the angle of his jaw, the quietude with
which he made the announcement were eloquent of determination. The door
closed behind him and he went out into the street as one dazed. The
first, a merely momentary impulse, was to leave Guy to his own devices.
But that passed. He became possessed by fear--an overpowering fear of
imminent danger to himself. He judged rightly that Guy's chivalry, the
chivalry which was leading him to sacrifice himself to an ideal, would
equally compel him to keep silence in regard to his confederate. But
Guy's silence would not protect him if enquiries were pushed home in
regard to either of the two adventures in which Guy had taken part.
Lynton Hora knew that he could not escape suspicion, and suspicion once
awakened he knew that his career would come to an end. There loomed
before his mind the long days of dull routine, the still longer nights
behind the locked doors, the coarse food of the prison, the horrible
convict dress. Furtively he looked over his shoulder, for it seemed to
him that a hand was almost outstretched to grasp him.

Pooh! There was nobody taking any notice of him. The
pleasant-featured, sunburnt man who passed him at the
moment could have no idea whose sleeve he had brushed.
The Master crushed down his fear. Guy must be
protected against himself, and there was no time to waste. A lunatic
asylum? Certainly Guy was mad enough for one. But there would be many
difficulties to be surmounted, and time was short. Hora's mind became
active as it always did under stress of necessity. Was there no one who
could prevail upon Guy to forego his intention, no argument which would
appeal to him? Stay. There was one which might succeed. Supposing Guy
were to learn his real parentage.

Lynton Hora hastened his steps. He saw one chance of saving Guy from
the consequences of his folly, of saving himself also, and at the same
time paying his debt of hatred. Captain Marven assuredly would never
allow his son to consign himself to a gaol. Guy would be too chivalrous
to smirch the fair fame of a family to which Meriel belonged. With his
mind dwelling on this expedient, Hora looked behind him no more. He
was not aware that the man with the sunburnt face kept him steadily
in view until he disappeared into his own abode. He did not suspect
that Detective Inspector Kenly, for he was the man who had brushed his
sleeve, waited patiently until he reappeared again and followed him
discreetly until he knocked at the door of Captain Marven's town house.
The Inspector only saw in that fact one additional piece of evidence
of Marven's guilty connection with the Horas. He saw that Hora put
a package into the hands of the servant who opened the door, and he
made a mental note of the fact. He guessed that the King's Messenger
had arrived in town in obedience to the summons which had been sent
him, and he assumed that he had communicated the fact of his arrival
to Hora. Still at the heels of his quarry he returned again to
Westminster Mansions, and there he transferred the duty to one of his
subordinates. The hour was two in the afternoon, and at three he was to
be a fourth at the interview between Captain Marven and the Great Man
and the Permanent Secretary at the Foreign Office.



CHAPTER XXVI

CAPTAIN MARVEN'S SURPRISE PACKET


When in response to the official summons Captain Marven returned to
town he was more perturbed than he would have cared to confess, at the
disastrous ending to Meriel's love affair. The intimacy of everyday
life had only confirmed the favourable impression Guy had produced
upon him, and he had looked forward with pleasure to welcoming him as
a member of his family. But altogether apart from the question of his
own gratification, he was deeply pained that a cloud should have cast
its shadow on the girl's happiness, and he be able to do nothing to
dissipate it. He was in that condition of mind when trifles are apt to
irritate the best conditioned of men, and he was consequently as nearly
discourteous as it was possible for him to be when Mr. Hildebrand
Flurscheim thrust himself into the same compartment of the railway
train. As a travelling companion Flurscheim was the last person in the
world he would have chosen, and he strove to ignore his presence by
burying himself in a newspaper.

But Flurscheim was not accustomed to be ignored. He took no notice
of Marven's coolness, but chattered away incessantly, and at last he
succeeded in capturing the Captain's attention.

"There seems to have been some trouble between the young people," he
had remarked.

"Really, I cannot conceive that if there is it can be any
business of yours, Mr. Flurscheim," replied Marven frigidly.

The Jew had taken no notice of the snub.

"I'm not so sure of that," he had answered. "I am not so sure but that
I may not be successful in putting matters straight between them."

"What on earth are you driving at?" asked the Captain.

Flurscheim smiled. "It's not a matter I can talk about," he answered,
"without the permission of others, but I've seen how interested you
are in Mr. Guy Hora, and I've put my own construction on your looking
a bit down in the mouth this morning. I hope you'll excuse me speaking
straight what's in my mind, and if I'm mistaken, I apologise for my
interference. That's my impression, anyway," he continued, as Captain
Marven did not reply, "so I thought that I would tell you that I think
I know what is troubling Mr. Hora, and that I also think it is in my
power to clear up the trouble. Of course, I may be mistaken, but I hope
I am not, for I owe your young friend a debt I can never hope fully to
repay."

He spoke so earnestly that Marven's reserve and irritation melted away,
and the two men parted at the London terminus on the best of terms with
each other.

But although Marven had not learned anything as to the
nature of Flurscheim's intended action he felt easier in
his mind, for he realised that the Jew was very much in
earnest, and he drove off to his town house to make his
preparations for his anticipated journey with a far lighter
heart than he had possessed when leaving Whitsea.

These preparations were soon completed, and he was sitting down to a
hastily prepared luncheon when Lynton Hora had knocked at his door.
Hora had not anticipated finding Captain Marven in town, but had merely
called in order to ascertain with certainty where the letter he had
written would find him. Then finding that Marven was in the house, he
had left the packet with instructions that it was to be immediately
delivered.

The package Hora had left was a bulky one. Marven merely glanced at it
when the servant brought it to him. Not until he had finished lunch did
he cut the string. When the wrapper was unfolded and he had shaken out
the contents his face paled, and he gasped for breath. There seemed but
little reason for his agitation; the parcel contained nothing but a
child's pinafore and a letter. Yet the sight of the pinafore was quite
sufficient to blur his vision and set his hands shaking. He recognised
it. He knew it instantly, without the necessity for turning to the
corner where the letters G. M. were embroidered by his wife's own hand.
He sprang to his feet and rang the bell violently.

"Where is the man who brought this parcel?" he demanded directly the
servant who had waited on him made her appearance. His anxiety was so
great that the woman was terrified, and some minutes elapsed before
he could obtain from her a connected account of Hora's call. She
seemed to think she must have been in some way to blame for receiving
the package. Marven succeeded ultimately in reassuring her, and
sent her out hastily to see if the messenger still lingered in the
neighbourhood. He followed to the door and was grievously
disappointed when she declared that he was nowhere to be seen.
Bethinking himself of the unopened letter he returned to the room where
he had left it. The envelope was similar to many which had reached
him previously, on the anniversary of his child's disappearance,
but when he opened it he saw that it contained much more than the
three-lined typed message telling him that his child was alive. There
were many sheets of note paper covered in a bold handwriting which
seemed familiar to him. His hand shook more than ever as he smoothed
out the sheets, and his eyes grew dim again. Was his son at last to be
restored to him? He laid down the letter deliberately, and not until he
had succeeded in mastering his emotion did he attempt to make himself
acquainted with the contents. The opening sentence made his heart leap
with joy. The epistle opened baldly, without any of the customary
methods of address.

"The time has arrived when I am compelled to restore your son to you. I
hope you will be proud of him. He is known to the world as Guy Hora."

Then his instinct had been right. Guy was his son. He wanted to read
no more. That was quite enough. He would hasten to make himself known
to his son. He rang the bell and ordered the servant to summon a cab
immediately. He would send a wire to his wife informing her of the good
news. He picked up the pinafore, folded it carefully and placed it in
his pocket. The letter he could read on his way to Guy's chambers. But
first he would see if his correspondent revealed himself. He turned to
the last page. Yes, there was a signature, "Hartley Ruthven, now known
as Lynton Hora."

He remembered his brother officer and unsuccessful rival
perfectly. He had thought, like all the rest of the world, Ruthven had
been dead years since. The reason for his child's disappearance ceased
to be a mystery any longer. Yet why should Ruthven now desire to return
to life? A sudden dread seized upon Marven as he remembered his old
comrade's cold, revengeful nature, the nature which had been the real
reason for his unpopularity in the regiment, instead of the possession
of narrow means, to which Hora had always ascribed it. Perhaps this
letter was only a part of Ruthven's revenge upon the successful rival.
Perhaps he had better read it to the end before starting in search of
Guy. He passed through the entire gamut of the emotions before he had
come to the end of the epistle. Hora had deliberately set himself to
describe Guy's history in plain, matter-of-fact terms. He gave details
of the manner of the kidnapping of the child and particulars concerning
him which left no doubt that he was writing the truth. Then he went on
to relate how from the first he had trained Guy to a criminal career.
Captain Marven's heart was eaten out with rage, and he swore to himself
that the sun should not set before he exacted a reckoning from his
enemy.

Hora wrote of Guy's university career, and as he read Marven's heart
expanded again with joy. His boy had apparently been uninjured by
his earlier education. He thanked God for that. Then came two pages
in which Hora related the episodes of the Flurscheim robbery and of
the despoiling of himself of the despatches entrusted to him. "The
latter was an unpremeditated link in my chain of revenge," wrote Hora.
"Fortune does not always favour the virtuous." The paper became blank
to Marven's eyes. The servant who came to announce that the cab was
waiting at the door had to speak twice before she could make her master
comprehend.

The cabman must wait until he had finished the letter. He read on.

"You will naturally ask why I am telling these facts now. I have two
reasons. Fortune has deserted me at last. I had intended to reveal
Guy's parentage when he stood in the dock so deeply stained with crime
that part of the odium he incurred would necessarily fall upon you.
More recently I determined that I would refrain from putting that
coping stone on the edifice of my revenge. Not out of any misplaced
tenderness for you. Do not think that. My reason was a purely selfish
one. My adopted son had somehow endeared himself to me. I foresaw in
him an ornament to my own profession. I became sentimental and so,
foolish. I thought he should always remain my son. I forgot that he
had your blood in his veins and I let him fall under your influence.
I forgot too that a girl can shatter the most complete philosophy
with a glance of her eyes. The young fool has fallen in love with
Meriel Challys, and the consequence is that he has got into his head
a ridiculous idea that he must deliver himself up to justice in
order to make amends for his legitimate spoiling of the Egyptians,
Flurscheim and yourself. He is proposing to do so within the next
forty-eight hours, so you may have time to prevent his voluntary
martyrdom--a martyrdom he will certainly regret, judging from my
own experience. Do not think, however, that I am only animated by
Guy's interests. I am still keenly alive to my own safety. I have
had quite enough of prison life, and am well prepared with
means of escape, though I do not desire to end my existence just yet.
Of course, if you care to sacrifice your son in order that I shall not
escape, that is your affair. Guy knows nothing of his parentage, though
I have taken steps to inform him of it should you fail to do so. I
shall not leave him entirely in your hands."

Captain Marven laid the letter down, and, dropping his face in his
hands, he groaned aloud. His heart was sick with anguish. His long lost
son was returned to him, but in what guise? By training, by profession,
he was a thief. Guy Marven, his son, a thief! The horror of it was
almost too great to be borne! It was the bitterest blow of his life,
far more bitter even than the blow which had fallen when his baby boy
had been stolen from him. If Lynton Hora could have watched the effect
produced by his communication, even his thirst for revenge would have
been satisfied. But more bitter even than the knowledge of what his
son had become was the realisation of the burden of duty which the
revelation thrust upon him. As he realised his duty in the matter,
Captain Marven's face was grey with anguish. He had found his son only
to lose him again--to lose him amongst the yellow-garbed denizens of
the convict prison. More, it was he who must, with his own hand, send
him to that outer darkness. God grant that his son would be a man! God
grant it! That was Captain Marven's earnest prayer.

Then his wife and Meriel? What if they were to learn of Guy's
relationship. Captain Marven could only dimly conceive the effect upon
them.

The servant came again to announce that the cab was awaiting him.
Marven rose, but it was as a man ten years older than the one who had
opened Hora's letter ten minutes before. His face was lined, and his
hand tremulous, but his lips were set firmly. He saw his duty plainly
before him. There was only one path he could tread, even though every
step on that path gave him a fresh pang. But he must see Guy first,
before he took that step.

He entered the cab and was driven to the Albany. He was more master
of himself by the time he arrived. He wondered what he should do if
Guy should be absent from home, for the time at his command was short.
Within an hour he was due at the Foreign Office.

Guy opened the door, and started with amazement at sight of his
visitor's face.

"Captain Marven!" he exclaimed. Then a great fear took possession of
him. "Meriel?" he gasped.

Marven grasped the intention of the query.

"Meriel was all right when I left her this morning," he replied.

Guy's relief was obvious. "Are you ill? Is anything the matter?" he
asked, as he closed the door behind the Captain, and followed him into
his sitting-room.

Marven was at a loss for words. Hora's letter was in his hand. He held
it out to Guy, and said huskily, "Read this."

"But----" interrupted Guy.

"No, read this," repeated Marven.

Guy took the letter. He recognised the handwriting, and he wondered.
His wonder gave place to amazement as he read. Amazement was succeeded
by horror, and, when he had finished reading, the paper dropped from
his hands, and he turned his face away from the man who
had brought it, in a vain endeavour to conceal his emotion. He was
hardly aware that a hand was laid on his arm, until a voice, tremulous
with emotion, said, "Guy, my son."

He disdained concealment then. He wheeled round and clutched blindly at
the two hands outstretched to meet his own.

"Father, forgive! forgive!" he muttered brokenly.



CHAPTER XXVII

DUTY CALLS


All too swiftly speeded the minutes which were at Captain Marven's
disposal. There was so much to be explained, so much to be learned,
and barely an hour to explain everything. Yet, short as the time, it
was broken in upon by the arrival of another visitor. For the second
time that day Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim found himself thrusting his
company upon persons who had little desire for it. When he knocked at
the door of Guy's chambers Guy at first ignored the summons. But the
knocking persisted. He was forced to open the door, if only to prevent
his neighbours being disturbed, and, when once the door was open,
Flurscheim refused to be excluded.

"I must see you privately at once," declared the connoisseur. "My
business is of the utmost importance."

Guy admitted him into the sitting-room, where the sight of Captain
Marven surprised him into an exclamation.

"I must see you alone--quite alone," he insisted to Guy.

"I would rather you did not," said Guy. "I am afraid there is nothing
you can say which will be news to Captain Marven."

Flurscheim looked from the young man to the elder
man, and his shrewd eyes noted the emotion from
which both were obviously suffering.

"It's my misfortune to have arrived at an inopportune time," he
remarked. "But you shall soon be rid of my presence. I only want to rid
myself of the debt I owe you for preserving my life."

Guy's face flushed. He felt exquisitely uncomfortable.

"You rate my service too highly," he said. "I did nothing which
entailed any risk to myself, and----" Flurscheim interrupted, but
Guy continued hastily, "And yet, perhaps, it is as well that you
should have arrived just now, while Captain Marven is here. I have a
confession to make to you. I should like him to hear what I have to
say and--and, when I have said it, I think you will no longer consider
yourself in my debt."

The connoisseur found it difficult to believe his ears. Guy's words
could only bear one meaning. He glanced at Captain Marven and saw that
a light had come into his face. Marven had grasped Guy's arm, and
Flurscheim heard him say,

"That's right, Guy, get it over."

Guy turned to him. There was a new-born humility in his voice and
manner. "It is really your wish?" he asked.

"My wish is that my son should do his duty," replied Marven sadly.

Guy threw back his head and faced the Jew.

"Mr. Flurscheim," he said, "I am the thief who stole your picture."

Father and son were astounded at the result of the bold confession.
They had expected amazement, probably immediate denunciation, but,
instead, the Jew threw up his hands deprecatingly, and fussily
remarked: "There, there, there. What if you did? I could very well
afford the loss, couldn't I?"

Guy stared. He thought that he was not believed, that, possibly,
Flurscheim imagined that he had taken leave of his senses.

"But it is true, Mr. Flurscheim. I--Guy Hora--stole your pictures. See,
I can give you proof."

He turned to a little silver-bound casket lying on the table, and took
from it the miniature which was so like Meriel. He cast one longing
glance at the portrait as he handed it to the connoisseur.

"Well, what if you did steal my picture," snapped Flurscheim, "there is
no need to inform the whole world of the fact, is there?"

Guy was bewildered.

"I shall say no more about it," continued Flurscheim, "except to advise
you to keep that miniature out of the sight of prying eyes, and to take
the earliest opportunity of getting rid of that d----d scoundrel of a
valet of yours."

"But, Mr. Flurscheim," said Guy, "you do not seem to comprehend, I----"

The situation trembled on the verge of farce. The Jew's eyes twinkled
with amusement, but he grew grave as he saw Captain Marven's haggard
face.

"Let me explain, Mr. Hora," he said. "A few days ago your man Jessel
gave me information of this miniature being in your possession.
That same afternoon while I was planning how to punish you, I fell
overboard and you saved my life. Now, you tell me, you were the
actual robber of the picture and other little articles. Well, in
return you presented me with something I value still more.
Shall we call it a deal, and shake hands on it?"

Guy could barely see the outstretched hand. A mist was before his eyes.

"Anyhow, I can appreciate your generosity," he said, as he and the Jew
grasped hands, "and perhaps, if I could have restored you the articles
I have stolen, I might have listened. But there is another concerned. I
must share the penalty he will have to pay."

"There may be a hundred concerned. I'll not trouble any of 'em, if I
should hurt you by so doing. Come, Mr. Hora, say it's a deal. Don't
think you're accepting a favour. It's all the other way about, so you
needn't let your pride stand in the way."

"Pride!" remarked Guy. "My pride has gone before my fall." He was
silent. A few hours previously he would eagerly have accepted
Flurscheim's offer, but since he had read Hora's letter to Captain
Marven, the whole position was changed. Lynton Hora was no longer
worthy of consideration. There was no tie of blood between them. Hora
had deliberately deceived him, poisoned his mind, robbed him of parents
and honour and love to gratify the malice in his heart. Guy could not
think of sparing him. There could be no treachery where so deeply dyed
a traitor was concerned.

"You'll say it's a deal?" asked Flurscheim again.

Captain Marven intervened. "Perhaps it will be best to explain the
whole of the circumstances to Mr. Flurscheim," he said quietly. "I know
that he will treat the family matters involved as purely confidential."

Flurscheim listened while Captain Marven deliberately laid
before him the facts. "You see," he added quietly, when
he had finished the story, "that this matter cannot remain a secret
between us. This letter must be laid before my chief."

"But that is madness," cried Flurscheim. He gesticulated wildly in his
excitement. He protested, he implored, he argued that only an entirely
wrong-headed sense of duty could demand such a course of action. But
Marven remained inflexible, and Guy supported him in his determination.

He was still arguing when the striking of a clock warned Marven that
he must leave. Already it had been arranged that Guy was to accompany
him to the Foreign Office. "I shall come, too," declared the Jew. "Sir
Everard Markham is an old acquaintance of mine. Perhaps he will make
you listen to reason."

Neither Captain Marven nor Guy believed that he would fulfil his
threat. But they did not know the pertinacity with which Flurscheim
carried out every scheme to which he had once set his hand. They left
him on the pavement, and drove to Whitehall, but Flurscheim followed
them a few minutes later. When he arrived at the Foreign Office Captain
Marven had already been shown to the Permanent Secretary's room.
Flurscheim demanded notepaper, and, scribbling a hasty note, succeeded
in persuading a messenger to deliver it to Sir Everard Markham at once.
Then he sat down, and awaited the result.

The note was delivered as he desired, but it remained unopened for
a while. The Permanent Secretary was far too deeply immersed in the
business in hand to have a single thought for anything else.

It was a distasteful task which Sir Everard Markham had
undertaken to perform. Never before, during his tenure of office, had
he been called upon to question the honesty of any of his trusted
officials. That a soldier and a gentleman could be so lost to all
sense of honour as to deliberately steal government secrets for
purposes of private gain was almost unthinkable. Yet the report which
Detective Inspector Kenly had made left very little room for doubt as
to Captain Marven's guilt. And Marven was the last man whom he should
have suspected of such infamy. The Secretary of State, too, was as
much amazed as the Permanent Secretary at Kenly's report. He also knew
Captain Marven personally. He had dined at his house, they belonged
to the same clubs, he would have pledged his whole estate on Marven's
fidelity, and yet--he trusted that the damning facts might be explained
away, though he doubted that it would be possible to furnish any
plausible explanation of the facts save one.

Most damning of all to both their minds was the final item of
information which Inspector Kenly had brought with him shortly before
the hour at which it had been arranged for the King's Messenger
to call. There could only be one explanation of Lynton Hora's
communication with Marven within an hour or two of his reaching town.
The two men must be in close communication with one another. Kenly
himself no longer had any doubts as to Captain Marven's guilt. He only
regretted that the exigencies of the situation were such that any one
of the gang would escape his clutches. Still, there would be some
satisfaction in having assisted to unmask such a scoundrel. He looked
forward to the interview with keen anticipation. He had advised the
course to be adopted, and, with some alterations of their own, both
the Great Man and the Permanent Secretary had fallen in with his views.

But the interview was not destined to take the lines suggested, for
almost the first words Captain Marven had spoken, when he had been
ushered into the presence of his three judges, had thrown the carefully
discussed plans into confusion. So intent was he on performing the
duty he had laid down for himself, that he observed nothing out of the
way in the presence of Sir Gadsby Dimbleby and another man, a stranger
to him, in the Permanent Secretary's room. He did not observe that
neither the Permanent Secretary nor the Great Man had offered him a
hand, nor that there was a false ring about the "How d'ye do, Marven,"
with which Sir Gadsby greeted him. Trivialities, such as these, were
of no importance to the man who had before him the terrible duty of
denouncing the son whom he had but just found.

Captain Marven had mapped out for himself the course to be pursued.
First he must make amends for his own share in the disclosure. He had
failed in his trust. He had allowed himself to fall into the trap laid
for him. There was only one way in which he could make amends.

"I suppose, Sir Markham," he said, "you have sent for me in the
ordinary course. I regret that some matters I have to lay before you
will probably lead you to the conclusion that I am no longer fit to be
entrusted with your commands. I think it well to tell you at once, in
case you are in urgent need of a messenger, so that you may communicate
with the next man on the rota."

A dead silence followed his words. The Great Man looked
at the Permanent Secretary and the Permanent
Secretary returned the glance. One thought was common to each of their
minds. Was Marven going to confess? They suddenly became aware that the
Captain had aged considerably since they last saw him, that his face
was worn and lined, his eyes dull. Yet he held himself erect, and his
voice was calm.

He continued, "The matter is of importance. Of course I can have no
objection to the presence of Sir Gadsby, but I do not recognise this
gentleman,"--he indicated Kenly with a gesture--"and if he would
retire----"

Kenly made no movement, and the Permanent Secretary raised his eyebrows
in mute enquiry to the Great Man. Sir Gadsby coughed. Then he remarked
drily, "This gentleman is Detective Inspector Kenly of Scotland Yard.
It is my desire that he should hear why you consider yourself unfit to
be trusted with your duties as a King's Messenger."

Captain Marven could not fail to understand the suggestion which lay
behind the Great Man's words. Still more significant was the cold tone
in which the words were spoken. He was himself suspect. His summons
was not in the ordinary course of events. He was to have been called
to account. Well, what did it matter? Yet, though his cheek flushed,
and as suddenly paled, he gave no other sign of agitation. "He has a
soldier's pluck, anyway," muttered Kenly to himself, as Marven replied
calmly, "Certainly, if you wish it, Sir Gadsby."

Marven turned immediately to the Permanent Secretary. "I received
barely two hours ago a letter from an old brother officer of mine,
named Hartley Ruthven, who is now known by the name of Lynton Hora. I
want you to read that letter first. Afterwards I should like to add
any information which is in my possession to the disclosures it
contains."

The Permanent Secretary took the letter from Marven's hand, and glanced
rapidly over the first page.

"Good God!" he said. He looked up and insensibly his tone became more
kindly. "Won't you sit down, Marven?"

Captain Marven seated himself. The Permanent Secretary read another
page. Then he spoke again.

"Shall I read this letter to Sir Gadsby? I am sure that if I say it is
desirable that Mr. Kenly shall withdraw he will not insist upon his
remaining."

"I should prefer Mr. Kenly should hear the contents," answered Marven
steadily.

The Permanent Secretary read the letter aloud. When he concluded there
was a silence that could be felt.

Marven broke it. "My son is waiting below to give himself up to
justice." His voice quivered for a moment, then became steady again.
"He is ready--even anxious--to pay the penalty."

Sir Gadsby's face became purple. He turned to Kenly. "Here you, what
the devil do you mean by letting this d----d scoundrel Hora go about
kidnapping honest men's sons and bringing 'em up to break their
father's hearts? What is the use of a detective force at all?"

Kenly nearly fell off his chair at the suddenness of the attack.
He was far too amazed to defend himself. He understood the next
moment that the explosion was only the ebullition of a warm heart
which needed an outlet, for the next moment the Great Man had
taken Captain Marven's hand and was shaking it violently, while he
stuttered out, "By Gad, Marven, I have to apologise to you.
I've been thinking that you peeped into that despatch box yourself.
I'll never forgive myself for doubting you."

Captain Marven smiled sadly. "Though unintentionally, I have betrayed
my trust," he said. "If I had been more careful, my son----" He
could get no further. The Great Man wiped his eyes and blew his nose
violently. He knew Marven's story, knew of his sorrow and his hopes,
and he could appreciate the wonderful devotion to duty which had led
him to so sacrifice his son. He turned to the Permanent Secretary.
"Look here, Markham, we must put our old heads together and get the boy
out of this scrape somehow." He nodded to the detective. "You ought to
be able to suggest something, Kenly."

The Inspector's face was a study. He foresaw all his efforts being
wasted. He set his lips doggedly.

"I am afraid you are asking me to assent in compounding a felony," he
answered sourly.

"Compounding a felony be d----d!" roared the Great Man. "I'll guarantee
it wouldn't be the first time you've compounded."

To this totally undeserved slur, the Inspector was about to make a
heated reply, when the Permanent Secretary intervened. "Sir Gadsby
often says more than he means," he remarked, adding thoughtfully, "--in
private life, of course."

The Great Man laughed, and said, "Yes, you must not take my last remark
to you literally, Inspector."

Kenly's face cleared, but he was still loth to let the victim, about
whom he had wound his net, escape.

"Do you propose to let this man Lynton Hora go free, then?"
he asked. "What would Mr. Flurscheim say to that?"

A totally unexpected answer came to the enquiry. The Permanent
Secretary had remembered the unopened note which had been brought to
him. He had torn it open, and the signature had attracted his attention.

"Suppose we ask Mr. Flurscheim," he said. "Listen to this," he read the
note aloud.

 "DEAR SIR MARKHAM: A friend of mine, from some pig-headed
 notion of duty, is insisting on sending his son to prison. I want you,
 before you take any action in the matter, to hear what I have to say
 on the question.

                                "Very sincerely yours,
                                "HILDEBRAND FLURSCHEIM.

 "P. S.--By the time you receive this you will, of course, understand
 that I am writing about Captain Marven.

 "PP. S.--I shall wait here until I see you."

The Great Man rubbed his hands together and chuckled.

"Let us have Mr. Flurscheim up," he said.



CHAPTER XXVIII

THE FRUITS OF A CRIMINAL PHILOSOPHY


Lynton Hora was not to be allowed to escape. That was the decision
arrived at, after the prolonged conference at the Foreign Office, and
Detective Inspector Kenly's mind was thereby disburdened of the fear
lest all his efforts should have been wasted. He would have liked
to have made certain of one prisoner there and then, but this was
forbidden him. He had no belief in repentant offenders, and to him Guy
appeared nothing more. Still Flurscheim refused to charge Guy. Captain
Marven undertook to be responsible for his answering any charge, Sir
Everard Markham added his persuasions, and Sir Gadsby Dimbleby declared
that he would take it as a personal insult if Guy were arrested before
the Master Criminal was laid by the heels. The Great Man was far too
great a man for a detective inspector to offend, and so Guy left the
Foreign Office with Captain Marven to await the summons to surrender
himself, when information of Hora's arrest should reach him.

The Captain was very grateful for the respite, none the less
because he had not personally urged it. For a little while his
son would be with him. As yet the prison stain was not upon him.
He was pathetically anxious to become acquainted with the grown
child who was so soon to be torn away again. Duty may be
sometimes an over-hard task-master, yet he faced it manfully, and could
at least find some small consolation in the fact that his son faced it
as manfully as himself.

Detective Inspector Kenly saw them drive away together, and, as
he caught sight of the look of pleasure on the face of the King's
Messenger, he was not altogether sorry that he had been compelled to
forego the arrest.

"It's a curious tangle," he muttered. Then he hailed a cab, and
gave the address of a police court. Ten minutes' interview with the
magistrate was all he sought, and, when he re-entered the waiting cab,
he had in his possession two documents--a warrant for Lynton Hora's
arrest, and a search warrant for the flat in Westminster Mansions.

Thus provided for all emergencies, he drove straight away for Hora's
residence. There was no time to be wasted. From what he had learned
during the afternoon it was clear that Lynton Hora must be aware that
at any moment his deeds might be brought to light, for Guy had been
called in to the conference, and he had revealed all that had passed
between himself and the man he had believed to be his father.

On arrival at Westminster Mansions Inspector Kenly stamped his
foot with vexation on learning that Lynton Hora had gone out. His
subordinate was absent, too. If flight was in Hora's mind, the sergeant
would obey the instructions and detain him. Kenly determined to make
use of the absence to execute the search warrant in his possession. But
he was not going to leave anything to chance. He telephoned to Scotland
Yard for further assistance, and, pending its arrival, he chatted
with his old friend, the hall porter, and from him he learned that
the other occupant of the flat had also gone out that morning, and had
not returned. This seemed more like preparation for flight than ever,
but Myra's absence also left him a clear field for his investigations.
A very few minutes elapsed before the assistance he had asked for
arrived. He left one of the two plain-clothes men in the hall and took
the other with him upstairs. No one was aware of the nature of their
business, and the two men entered the flat with the service key. Kenly
did not waste time on a careful examination of the lower rooms. He went
directly to the floor leading to the attics where Hora's "collection"
was stored. He only wanted to verify the information which Guy had
given as to the whereabouts of the Greuze. He had long since provided
himself with a key to the lock of the door so that admission to the
attics presented no difficulty. Guy had spoken truly. Kenly found the
Greuze and the snuff-boxes stolen from Flurscheim's house. He saw also
that there was a rich store of other articles in locked cabinets and
cases, for which no doubt he would be able to find owners. But he did
not linger to examine them. There would be plenty of time for that
after Hora had been apprehended.

After he had been apprehended! Kenly did not allow himself to
consider the possibility that he might escape. Yet as minutes passed
by and the minutes added themselves into hours, he began to be
uneasy in his mind. His uneasiness became acute apprehension when,
as dusk was falling, the subordinate to whom had been entrusted the
duty of shadowing Hora returned to the Mansions alone.

A rich variety of objurgations rose to the Inspector's tongue, but
there was no time to be lost in uttering them. He enquired where Hora
had been lost sight of. The man explained to the best of his ability.
He had followed Hora to Waterloo railway station, had heard him take
a return ticket to Worcester Park, had himself booked to the same
destination, had taken a seat in the next compartment, had watched to
see whether he alighted at any intermediate station, and on arrival at
Worcester Park had discovered that the compartment in which Hora had
travelled was empty.

Kenly reflected. Worcester Park was two stations further down the line
than Wimbledon. What if Hora had wished to see Jessel again? He turned
to the man. "Was Hora carrying a small black bag and an overcoat on his
arm?"

"Yes," was the reply.

"You idiot," muttered Kenly; then he added, "You will wait here until
Hora returns, or you are relieved. If he comes back, you will arrest
him and take him straight to Bow Street. If the girl returns, arrest
her, too." Then he turned to the other two men. "Go back to the
Yard, and have a full description of him and the girl telegraphed to
every port in the kingdom. Stay, though, you had better wire, also,
particulars of the disguise in which he succeeded in eluding this dolt."

The subordinate shivered, and realised that if Hora did not return it
would be advisable for him to retire from the force.

Kenly dictated a description of Hora's clerical disguise. There was yet
a chance that he might get upon his track. He jumped into the first
cab that passed and drove away to Waterloo. He could have wept with
vexation at the thought of his prey escaping so easily, through the
incompetence of his subordinate. He looked at his watch. A train was
timed to start for Wimbledon in two minutes. With luck he would just
catch it. He lifted the trap in the roof of the hansom, and shouted,
"Hurry up, cabby, I have a train to catch."

Luck was apparently against him. Traffic was heavy and the cab was
caught in a block. Kenly writhed with impatience. But a moment
later the traffic block appeared to be a special dispensation of
Providence. Kenly caught sight, in the light of a street lamp, of an
old clergyman, in shabby hat and cloak and carrying a small black bag,
amongst the crowd on the sidewalk. He could have shouted aloud with
delight. He jumped out of the cab, and tossed the driver a half-crown
piece. His first impulse was to dash forward, and there and then
effect the arrest. He had recognised Hora, he could have sworn to the
distinguishing limp. But a second thought restrained him. Though Guy's
statements had been apparently full and frank, Kenly had not credited
him when he had declared that he and Lynton Hora worked alone. He had
thought that there must be other members of the gang, a supposition
which had been fed by the information he had extracted from Jessel.
Hora had worn his clerical disguise when communicating with Jessel.
What more likely than that he should put it on when communicating with
other tools? Kenly determined to follow him.

Soon he was glad that he had done so. Hora apparently had no intention
of returning to Westminster Mansions. He boarded an omnibus which
took him northwards. Kenly sat behind him while they drove through
the brilliant streets of the West End. He changed the bus for another
travelling westwards, the detective at his heels. Passengers came and
went, but Hora remained until the end of the journey.

Kenly knew the district, and he thought that his suppositions were
about to be verified when he observed the direction Hora took upon
alighting. That way led to the quarter where the thieves of the
metropolis had gathered and made themselves a colony when their old
haunts in the centre of the city had been mowed down. He felt in his
pocket for his whistle, and wished that he had slipped a revolver
into his pocket that morning. But he followed, nevertheless, and was
thankful when a couple of uniformed policemen came in sight. As he
passed them he uttered a single word. The constables apparently took no
notice, but when Kenly was half the length of the street distant they
wheeled round and followed him steadily.

Hora pursued his way in a manner that showed that the quarter was not
strange to him. The detective hunched his shoulders, pulled his cap
down over his ears, and turned up his coat collar. Here he might be
recognised any moment. He did not want to alarm his quarry.

Hora turned into Fancy Lane. He was walking more quickly now. He
disappeared under the archway which led to "Ma" Norton's disreputable
shed. Arriving there Kenly paused. The two policemen turned into
the lane. He held up his hand and plunged into the blackness. The
constables came on, and arriving at the entrance they stood there
chatting quietly. But their eyes were keenly observant, and each
had loosened the truncheon hidden beneath his tunic. They were in the
enemy's country, and at any moment might be called upon to fight for
their lives.

Kenly blundered on through the darkness, guided by the sound of voices,
until he emerged into the yard. There his attention was attracted by
a dull light filtering through dirty panes of glass. It seemed to him
evidence that his objective was attained. Stealthily he made his way to
the window and peeped through.

He had seen many strange tableaux during his career, but none stranger
than that he now looked upon. He saw a dropsical old woman, with a
glass in her hand and a maudlin grin on her bloated face, balancing
herself with difficulty on a rickety chair. He saw Lynton Hora, with
a mocking smile on his face, by no means in keeping with his clerical
garb, pointing to the hideous figure. He saw another man at Hora's
elbow, a bullet-headed man, with closely cropped red hair and with
flushed face, whose eyes never wandered from the face of the fourth
member of the party. Kenly recognised her, too. Myra's beauty was not
easily forgotten, and it peeped out from beneath the mask of horror
which was drawn over her face.

Hora was speaking.

"So you have found your way back to your native slum, Myra. Do
you find it congenial to your dainty spirit? I see your mother is
celebrating your return. One day you will be like her." He wheeled
round rapidly and glanced at the man at his elbow. "You have found an
admirer, too, as well as a mother. You have lost no time."

Myra threw out her hands imploringly.

"Take me away, Commandatore. Take me away," she cried. She saw that
Hora hesitated, and she renewed her appeal.

"Why should I take you away?" he answered. "I offered you a husband and
a home. You let them escape you." He jerked his head to the man. "Hagan
here will supply you with both. Why should I interfere?"

The hope died out of her face and the fear reappeared as the man
lurched forward.

"'Ear what the Master says; e's a toff at spoutin', is the Master," he
said, with an ugly leer on his face.

She shrank from his touch, and looked vainly round for a way of escape.
Kenly thought of a hare he had once seen as it doubled almost at his
feet from two pursuing greyhounds. He placed his whistle between his
lips ready.

"Stand back, Hagan," said Hora authoritatively.

The man dropped his hand, but there was a frown on his face.

"Suppose I were to take you away?" he asked.

Hope shone out in her face again.

"Ask of me anything you will," she cried. "Anything but this."

She had forgotten everything in the supreme horror of the hideous hole
in which she had found herself.

That morning when she had left Lynton Hora's abode she had thought she
had been incapable of further suffering. She had gone out into the park
and sat there hour after hour, conscious at first only of the one fact
that Guy was lost to her forever. She had told herself that
she would never return to Lynton Hora's roof to face his sneers. He
had always hated her. She had no doubt that he was aware all the time
that Guy would never marry her, and that he had only bidden her try to
win his love that she might be humiliated by its rejection. Perhaps
he had lied to her about her mother and her home, merely that she
might not be tempted to escape from him. The sound of the word mother
appealed strongly to her in her dazed condition. Her mother could not
be worse than Hora. She had the address. One day she had copied it down
carefully. The slip of paper was still in her purse.

She had found her way thither with difficulty. Not until she had lost
herself amongst the streets in the neighbourhood of Fancy Lane did she
begin to regain her senses. Then the words of coarse abuse from the
doors of public houses, the shrill voices of women from open doors,
made her wish for flight. Darkness had fallen on the face of the town
by that time, and she became aware that she was nearly exhausted. Then
a child had led her to Fancy Lane, and another youngster, for the gift
of a sixpence, had acted as guide to her destination. Everybody in
Fancy Lane knew "Ma" Norton.

The bully on his way to his favourite drinking shop had seen her
passing along the street. A flash of the stones set in the bracelet she
still wore on her wrist--the bracelet Guy had given her--attracted his
attention. He had changed his purpose and followed her.

Myra had known that Hora had spoken only too truly the moment she
entered the den, where Mrs. Norton was soaking herself to death in
alcohol. The old woman had been just too tipsy to comprehend who her
visitor was. Myra had soon given up the task of trying to explain. She
had found a lamp, and, after lighting it, had shuddered with disgust
at the filthy surroundings revealed by the light. She could not stop
there. She had risen to leave, but found the exit blocked by the burly
figure of Bully Hagan.

He had heard her attempts to make Mrs. Norton understand who she was.
This was "Ma's" lady daughter. He foresaw profit in the fact. When
his eyes rested on Myra's perfect figure silhouetted against the
lamp she had lighted, another thought entered into his brain. He did
not at first disclose his thought. Myra thought he was merely intent
upon plunder. When she understood, she realised how the Sabine women
must have felt; she experienced the emotions of the women of a Balkan
village when an Albanian regiment was let loose upon it.

For an hour Myra had kept him at bay, her faculties racked to the
utmost. Then Lynton Hora had come on the scene, and she had appealed to
him.

Now Hora seemed to be considering her appeal, and her face brightened
with hope as she gazed eagerly on his face. He responded with a smile.

"It is lucky for you that I thought of coming and looking for you
here," he said. "Whatever you have done or left undone would not
deserve such a fate as that."

He indicated the man at his elbow with a gesture of scorn.

"You will take me home again." The relief was so
great that she could scarcely believe it.

"Yes, come along. It is getting late."

An angry growl arrested him.

"No, you don't," said Hagan.

The veins of the bully's forehead were swollen and his fists clenched.

"Get out of the way," said Hora, in the tone he would have used to
a cur in the street, and, as the man did not stir, he caught him by
the arm and thrust him aside so violently that he crashed against the
opposite wall.

"Come, Myra," said Hora.

Kenly lost nothing of the scene. He saw the look on the bully's face as
he picked himself up. He saw a flash of steel in his hand. The whistle
he held between his teeth shrilled out as he left the window and dashed
to the door. The sound was answered by other whistles, and he heard the
rush of feet towards him down the passage. He reached the door, but it
stuck fast. The sound of the advancing feet was drowned by a woman's
shriek. Kenly hurled his whole weight against the door. The shriek was
repeated. A second time the detective hurled himself against the door.
This time the catch gave way and he blundered forward into the room.

Two figures lay prone upon the floor, a man stood over them calmly
wiping the blood-stained blade of a knife on his sleeve. A dropsical
old woman sat gazing with a maudlin smile on her face at the scene.

Kenly's head whirled. He stood still, mechanically, until panting
breath behind him gave warning that assistance had arrived.

Hagan coolly handed him the knife.

"I done it," he said; "I've outed 'em both."

Then he held out his hands for the bracelets.

Kenly stooped to the floor, and laid his finger on Myra's wrist.
The pulse had ceased to beat. He laid her hand down again, and
bent over Lynton Hora. The Master lay perfectly still, and even
while the detective bent over him a glaze spread itself over
the open eyes. Kenly's quarry had escaped him.



L'ENVOI


Captain Marven never had cause to mourn for a son hidden behind the
bars of a convict prison.

The fate which had fallen upon Lynton Hora was so full of horror
that even Detective Inspector Kenly would have been willing to admit
that a greater power than that of the law he had striven to enforce
had administered justice. When his chief, therefore, told him that
he was expected to keep a discreet silence in regard to the part Guy
had played in the Flurscheim robbery, he could hardly squeeze out a
sigh. Later, he was to win his reward when, by means of the Great
Man's recommendation, he was appointed to the chief constableship of
an important borough where his position was such that Mrs. Detective
Inspector was compelled finally and for all time to renounce taking in
lodgers.

Mr. Hildebrand Flurscheim once again rejoiced in the possession of
his Greuze. It returned to its old place on his wall, so that morning
and night he could feast his eyes upon its beauties. Jessel never
applied for the reward. He returned to the shadows from which he
had emerged. In fact, he felt that he could not be happy in a land
where he was so well known to an important member of the detective
force of the police. But Flurscheim always lamented that, since the
Greuze and other valuables had been returned to him, it would be
impossible for him to liquidate his debt to Guy, who had
insisted even upon returning the miniature which bore so great a
likeness to Meriel.

That miniature, however, came again into Guy's possession in the form
of a wedding gift, when Meriel Challys changed her name to Meriel
Marven. The Jew's words had borne fruit. She found a loving duty in
helping Guy to bury his past, and Captain and Mrs. Marven found a
renewal of their own youth in the happiness which attended the union.
As for Guy--well, he has been heard to declare that the waters of his
life are full of star-dust.


THE END



TRANSCRIBER'S NOTES


Obvious typographical errors have been silently changed.

Inconsistent hyphenation has been corrected.



Recent Publications of Cupples & Leon Co.

The Powers and Maxine

By C. N. & A. M. Williamson

Authors of

  "The Lightning Conductor,"
  "Lady Betty Across the Water,"
  "The Car of Destiny," etc.

1 vol. 12 mo. cloth, gilt embossing

Illustrated by FRANK T. MERRILL

OPINIONS OF THE PRESS:


_The Boston Globe_

 "When a gifted and beautiful actress, who at the same time is a
 secret service agent for the British government, captivates Parisian
 society with her histrionic powers and incidentally breaks many hearts
 and gets into innumerable tragic situations, the narrative of her
 adventures could not possibly be dull. When it is told by C. N. &
 A. M. Williamson, those past-masters in the art of fiction, in such
 a dramatic book as 'The Powers and Maxine' every page throbs with
 interest."


_Portland Oregonian_

 "In reading this romance where sensations are knee deep, it is well
 to recall that every recent work of the Williamsons has been so
 popular that it has run above the 100,000 mark. Maxine, the heroine
 of this novel--which is the best and latest of the Williamsons,--is a
 beautiful actress who captures Paris with her art, while privately she
 is a secret service agent for the British government. Of course, she
 comes out ahead."


_Chicago Record-Herald_

 "A stirring story, written in a manner new to these authors. Deals
 with a purloined treaty, lost diamonds, love, mystery and vigorous
 plotting, set against a London and Paris background. The double love
 episode ends well, despite wicked schemes against both pairs of
 lovers."



Hill Rise

By W. B. Maxwell

Author of

  "Vivien,"
  "The Guarded Flame," etc.

1 vol. 12 mo. cloth, 320 pp. illustrated


Nor is "Hill Rise" one of those dreary, unpleasant creations known as
a "problem novel." It has a strong, virile, intensely exciting plot,
full of vigorous action, sustained suspense, thrilling episode and
continuous surprises. The character drawing is almost miraculous in
its fidelity to human nature. The whole story is powerful, simple and
intense. The sort of a narrative one cannot lay down unfinished.



The Man in the Basement

By Baron Palle Rosenkrantz

Author of

  "A Confession,"
  "The Widow," etc.

1 vol. 12 mo. cloth, illustrated


"The Man in the Basement" is perhaps the strangest story ever
written. Its every situation is out of the common and startlingly
unique. It compares to the average detective or mystery romance as
Sherlock Holmes compares with "Deadwood Dick" or some other dime novel
hero. The characters, most of them are Danes, and the wild, breezy
freedom and charm of the North are strikingly portrayed.



Graham of Claverhouse

By Ian Maclaren

The Last Great Novel of this Famous Author

Illustrated in Colors by Frank T. Merrill

1 vol. 12 mo. cloth, gilt


"GRAHAM OF CLAVERHOUSE" is a splendid novel of love, intrigue, and
adventure. Through every line breathes the spirit of vibrant human
nature and flashing local color. It is the historical romance of the
century, instinct with poetic feeling and impelling dramatic charm.



Caleb Conover, Railroader

By Albert Payson Terhune

1 vol. 12 mo. cloth, gilt

Illustrated in Colors by Frank Parker


"CALEB CONOVER" is truly an original character. His humor
is quaint and contagious and will be remembered long after
the book has been read.--_Washington Star._



Aladdin of London

By Max Pemberton

Author of

  "The Lady Evelyn,"
  "The Hundred Days," etc.

1 vol. 12 mo. cloth, gilt, illustrated


"Max Pemberton, the popular novelist, sustains his high reputation in
this thrilling tale of European life. Alban Kennedy, the impoverished
son of a British parson, is compelled to take up his abode in the
Whitechapel district of London, and becomes the suitor of a little
Polish maid who is infinitely above her mean environment. The
circumstances which lead to his adoption by a millionaire, the net of
intrigue woven about him, and the efforts to bring about the death of
his little sweetheart for political purposes, using him as the innocent
tool, make an engrossing plot."--_Albany Times-Union._



The Love That Prevailed

By F. Frankfort Moore

Author of

  "A Trial Marriage,"
  "The Jessamy Bride," etc.

1 vol. 12 mo. cloth, gilt, illustrated


"F. Frankfort Moore, author of 'The Jessamy Bride' and many other
pleasing stories, has taken John Wesley as the leading character in his
latest romance, 'The Love That Prevailed.' The evangelist is portrayed
in connection with a group of Cornish villagers. He actually loses his
heart to the Dolly Varden of the neighborhood, but, his unswerving
sense of honor controlling him, the more exalted love of Truth to
which he has dedicated his life is the love that prevails. But the
sensational matter in the story is the commotion caused by a distraught
disciple of the revivalist foretelling the immediate end of the world.
Upon the day he has set for the cataclysm the elements seem to aid
and abet him. His manner of self-destruction at the stormy crisis is
adequately awful. The minor characters are drawn well, particularly
the fox-hunting parson who tells Wesley he has done great mischief
with his Methodism; that before he came the parishioners were very
comfortable--'Sir, there was not a man of my flock who knew that he had
a soul. There was a healthy condition of things for you!'"--_N. Y.
Globe._




*** End of this Doctrine Publishing Corporation Digital Book "The master criminal" ***




Home